<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG src="images/cover.jpg" style="width:100%;" alt="[Illustration]" /></div>
<h1>The Scarlet Letter</h1>
<h2 class="no-break">by Nathaniel Hawthorne</h2>
<hr />
<h2>Contents</h2>
<table summary="" >
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#pref01">THE CUSTOM-HOUSE</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#pref02">THE SCARLET LETTER</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap01">I. THE PRISON DOOR</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap02">II. THE MARKET-PLACE</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap03">III. THE RECOGNITION</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap04">IV. THE INTERVIEW</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap05">V. HESTER AT HER NEEDLE</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap06">VI. PEARL</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap07">VII. THE GOVERNOR’S HALL</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap08">VIII. THE ELF-CHILD AND THE MINISTER</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap09">IX. THE LEECH</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap10">X. THE LEECH AND HIS PATIENT</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap11">XI. THE INTERIOR OF A HEART</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap12">XII. THE MINISTER’S VIGIL</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap13">XIII. ANOTHER VIEW OF HESTER</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap14">XIV. HESTER AND THE PHYSICIAN</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap15">XV. HESTER AND PEARL</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap16">XVI. A FOREST WALK</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap17">XVII. THE PASTOR AND HIS PARISHIONER</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap18">XVIII. A FLOOD OF SUNSHINE</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap19">XIX. THE CHILD AT THE BROOKSIDE</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap20">XX. THE MINISTER IN A MAZE</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap21">XXI. THE NEW ENGLAND HOLIDAY</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap22">XXII. THE PROCESSION</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap23">XXIII. THE REVELATION OF THE SCARLET LETTER</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#chap24">XXIV. CONCLUSION</SPAN></td>
</tr>
</table>
<hr />
<h2><SPAN name="pref01"></SPAN>THE CUSTOM-HOUSE</h2>
<h5>INTRODUCTORY TO “THE SCARLET LETTER”</h5>
<p>It is a little remarkable, that—though disinclined to talk overmuch of
myself and my affairs at the fireside, and to my personal friends—an
autobiographical impulse should twice in my life have taken possession of me,
in addressing the public. The first time was three or four years since, when I
favoured the reader—inexcusably, and for no earthly reason that either
the indulgent reader or the intrusive author could imagine—with a
description of my way of life in the deep quietude of an Old Manse. And
now—because, beyond my deserts, I was happy enough to find a listener or
two on the former occasion—I again seize the public by the button, and
talk of my three years’ experience in a Custom-House. The example of the
famous “P. P., Clerk of this Parish,” was never more faithfully
followed. The truth seems to be, however, that when he casts his leaves forth
upon the wind, the author addresses, not the many who will fling aside his
volume, or never take it up, but the few who will understand him better than
most of his schoolmates or lifemates. Some authors, indeed, do far more than
this, and indulge themselves in such confidential depths of revelation as could
fittingly be addressed only and exclusively to the one heart and mind of
perfect sympathy; as if the printed book, thrown at large on the wide world,
were certain to find out the divided segment of the writer’s own nature,
and complete his circle of existence by bringing him into communion with it. It
is scarcely decorous, however, to speak all, even where we speak impersonally.
But, as thoughts are frozen and utterance benumbed, unless the speaker stand in
some true relation with his audience, it may be pardonable to imagine that a
friend, a kind and apprehensive, though not the closest friend, is listening to
our talk; and then, a native reserve being thawed by this genial consciousness,
we may prate of the circumstances that lie around us, and even of ourself, but
still keep the inmost Me behind its veil. To this extent, and within these
limits, an author, methinks, may be autobiographical, without violating either
the reader’s rights or his own.</p>
<p>It will be seen, likewise, that this Custom-House sketch has a certain
propriety, of a kind always recognised in literature, as explaining how a large
portion of the following pages came into my possession, and as offering proofs
of the authenticity of a narrative therein contained. This, in fact—a
desire to put myself in my true position as editor, or very little more, of the
most prolix among the tales that make up my volume—this, and no other, is
my true reason for assuming a personal relation with the public. In
accomplishing the main purpose, it has appeared allowable, by a few extra
touches, to give a faint representation of a mode of life not heretofore
described, together with some of the characters that move in it, among whom the
author happened to make one.</p>
<p>In my native town of Salem, at the head of what, half a century ago, in the
days of old King Derby, was a bustling wharf—but which is now burdened
with decayed wooden warehouses, and exhibits few or no symptoms of commercial
life; except, perhaps, a bark or brig, half-way down its melancholy length,
discharging hides; or, nearer at hand, a Nova Scotia schooner, pitching out her
cargo of firewood—at the head, I say, of this dilapidated wharf, which
the tide often overflows, and along which, at the base and in the rear of the
row of buildings, the track of many languid years is seen in a border of
unthrifty grass—here, with a view from its front windows adown this not
very enlivening prospect, and thence across the harbour, stands a spacious
edifice of brick. From the loftiest point of its roof, during precisely three
and a half hours of each forenoon, floats or droops, in breeze or calm, the
banner of the republic; but with the thirteen stripes turned vertically,
instead of horizontally, and thus indicating that a civil, and not a military,
post of Uncle Sam’s government is here established. Its front is
ornamented with a portico of half-a-dozen wooden pillars, supporting a balcony,
beneath which a flight of wide granite steps descends towards the street. Over
the entrance hovers an enormous specimen of the American eagle, with outspread
wings, a shield before her breast, and, if I recollect aright, a bunch of
intermingled thunderbolts and barbed arrows in each claw. With the customary
infirmity of temper that characterizes this unhappy fowl, she appears by the
fierceness of her beak and eye, and the general truculency of her attitude, to
threaten mischief to the inoffensive community; and especially to warn all
citizens careful of their safety against intruding on the premises which she
overshadows with her wings. Nevertheless, vixenly as she looks, many people are
seeking at this very moment to shelter themselves under the wing of the federal
eagle; imagining, I presume, that her bosom has all the softness and snugness
of an eiderdown pillow. But she has no great tenderness even in her best of
moods, and, sooner or later—oftener soon than late—is apt to fling
off her nestlings with a scratch of her claw, a dab of her beak, or a rankling
wound from her barbed arrows.</p>
<p>The pavement round about the above-described edifice—which we may as well
name at once as the Custom-House of the port—has grass enough growing in
its chinks to show that it has not, of late days, been worn by any
multitudinous resort of business. In some months of the year, however, there
often chances a forenoon when affairs move onward with a livelier tread. Such
occasions might remind the elderly citizen of that period, before the last war
with England, when Salem was a port by itself; not scorned, as she is now, by
her own merchants and ship-owners, who permit her wharves to crumble to ruin
while their ventures go to swell, needlessly and imperceptibly, the mighty
flood of commerce at New York or Boston. On some such morning, when three or
four vessels happen to have arrived at once usually from Africa or South
America—or to be on the verge of their departure thitherward, there is a
sound of frequent feet passing briskly up and down the granite steps. Here,
before his own wife has greeted him, you may greet the sea-flushed ship-master,
just in port, with his vessel’s papers under his arm in a tarnished tin
box. Here, too, comes his owner, cheerful, sombre, gracious or in the sulks,
accordingly as his scheme of the now accomplished voyage has been realized in
merchandise that will readily be turned to gold, or has buried him under a bulk
of incommodities such as nobody will care to rid him of. Here,
likewise—the germ of the wrinkle-browed, grizzly-bearded, careworn
merchant—we have the smart young clerk, who gets the taste of traffic as
a wolf-cub does of blood, and already sends adventures in his master’s
ships, when he had better be sailing mimic boats upon a mill-pond. Another
figure in the scene is the outward-bound sailor, in quest of a protection; or
the recently arrived one, pale and feeble, seeking a passport to the hospital.
Nor must we forget the captains of the rusty little schooners that bring
firewood from the British provinces; a rough-looking set of tarpaulins, without
the alertness of the Yankee aspect, but contributing an item of no slight
importance to our decaying trade.</p>
<p>Cluster all these individuals together, as they sometimes were, with other
miscellaneous ones to diversify the group, and, for the time being, it made the
Custom-House a stirring scene. More frequently, however, on ascending the
steps, you would discern— in the entry if it were summer time, or in
their appropriate rooms if wintry or inclement weathers—a row of
venerable figures, sitting in old-fashioned chairs, which were tipped on their
hind legs back against the wall. Oftentimes they were asleep, but occasionally
might be heard talking together, in voices between a speech and a snore, and
with that lack of energy that distinguishes the occupants of alms-houses, and
all other human beings who depend for subsistence on charity, on monopolized
labour, or anything else but their own independent exertions. These old
gentlemen—seated, like Matthew at the receipt of custom, but not very
liable to be summoned thence, like him, for apostolic errands—were
Custom-House officers.</p>
<p>Furthermore, on the left hand as you enter the front door, is a certain room or
office, about fifteen feet square, and of a lofty height, with two of its
arched windows commanding a view of the aforesaid dilapidated wharf, and the
third looking across a narrow lane, and along a portion of Derby Street. All
three give glimpses of the shops of grocers, block-makers, slop-sellers, and
ship-chandlers, around the doors of which are generally to be seen, laughing
and gossiping, clusters of old salts, and such other wharf-rats as haunt the
Wapping of a seaport. The room itself is cobwebbed, and dingy with old paint;
its floor is strewn with grey sand, in a fashion that has elsewhere fallen into
long disuse; and it is easy to conclude, from the general slovenliness of the
place, that this is a sanctuary into which womankind, with her tools of magic,
the broom and mop, has very infrequent access. In the way of furniture, there
is a stove with a voluminous funnel; an old pine desk with a three-legged stool
beside it; two or three wooden-bottom chairs, exceedingly decrepit and infirm;
and—not to forget the library—on some shelves, a score or two of
volumes of the Acts of Congress, and a bulky Digest of the Revenue laws. A tin
pipe ascends through the ceiling, and forms a medium of vocal communication
with other parts of the edifice. And here, some six months ago—pacing
from corner to corner, or lounging on the long-legged stool, with his elbow on
the desk, and his eyes wandering up and down the columns of the morning
newspaper—you might have recognised, honoured reader, the same individual
who welcomed you into his cheery little study, where the sunshine glimmered so
pleasantly through the willow branches on the western side of the Old Manse.
But now, should you go thither to seek him, you would inquire in vain for the
Locofoco Surveyor. The besom of reform hath swept him out of office, and a
worthier successor wears his dignity and pockets his emoluments.</p>
<p>This old town of Salem—my native place, though I have dwelt much away
from it both in boyhood and maturer years—possesses, or did possess, a
hold on my affection, the force of which I have never realized during my
seasons of actual residence here. Indeed, so far as its physical aspect is
concerned, with its flat, unvaried surface, covered chiefly with wooden houses,
few or none of which pretend to architectural beauty—its irregularity,
which is neither picturesque nor quaint, but only tame—its long and lazy
street, lounging wearisomely through the whole extent of the peninsula, with
Gallows Hill and New Guinea at one end, and a view of the alms-house at the
other—such being the features of my native town, it would be quite as
reasonable to form a sentimental attachment to a disarranged checker-board. And
yet, though invariably happiest elsewhere, there is within me a feeling for Old
Salem, which, in lack of a better phrase, I must be content to call affection.
The sentiment is probably assignable to the deep and aged roots which my family
has stuck into the soil. It is now nearly two centuries and a quarter since the
original Briton, the earliest emigrant of my name, made his appearance in the
wild and forest-bordered settlement which has since become a city. And here his
descendants have been born and died, and have mingled their earthly substance
with the soil, until no small portion of it must necessarily be akin to the
mortal frame wherewith, for a little while, I walk the streets. In part,
therefore, the attachment which I speak of is the mere sensuous sympathy of
dust for dust. Few of my countrymen can know what it is; nor, as frequent
transplantation is perhaps better for the stock, need they consider it
desirable to know.</p>
<p>But the sentiment has likewise its moral quality. The figure of that first
ancestor, invested by family tradition with a dim and dusky grandeur, was
present to my boyish imagination as far back as I can remember. It still haunts
me, and induces a sort of home-feeling with the past, which I scarcely claim in
reference to the present phase of the town. I seem to have a stronger claim to
a residence here on account of this grave, bearded, sable-cloaked, and
steeple-crowned progenitor—who came so early, with his Bible and his
sword, and trode the unworn street with such a stately port, and made so large
a figure, as a man of war and peace—a stronger claim than for myself,
whose name is seldom heard and my face hardly known. He was a soldier,
legislator, judge; he was a ruler in the Church; he had all the Puritanic
traits, both good and evil. He was likewise a bitter persecutor; as witness the
Quakers, who have remembered him in their histories, and relate an incident of
his hard severity towards a woman of their sect, which will last longer, it is
to be feared, than any record of his better deeds, although these were many.
His son, too, inherited the persecuting spirit, and made himself so conspicuous
in the martyrdom of the witches, that their blood may fairly be said to have
left a stain upon him. So deep a stain, indeed, that his dry old bones, in the
Charter-street burial-ground, must still retain it, if they have not crumbled
utterly to dust! I know not whether these ancestors of mine bethought
themselves to repent, and ask pardon of Heaven for their cruelties; or whether
they are now groaning under the heavy consequences of them in another state of
being. At all events, I, the present writer, as their representative, hereby
take shame upon myself for their sakes, and pray that any curse incurred by
them—as I have heard, and as the dreary and unprosperous condition of the
race, for many a long year back, would argue to exist—may be now and
henceforth removed.</p>
<p>Doubtless, however, either of these stern and black-browed Puritans would have
thought it quite a sufficient retribution for his sins that, after so long a
lapse of years, the old trunk of the family tree, with so much venerable moss
upon it, should have borne, as its topmost bough, an idler like myself. No aim
that I have ever cherished would they recognise as laudable; no success of
mine—if my life, beyond its domestic scope, had ever been brightened by
success—would they deem otherwise than worthless, if not positively
disgraceful. “What is he?” murmurs one grey shadow of my
forefathers to the other. “A writer of story books! What kind of business
in life—what mode of glorifying God, or being serviceable to mankind in
his day and generation—may that be? Why, the degenerate fellow might as
well have been a fiddler!” Such are the compliments bandied between my
great grandsires and myself, across the gulf of time! And yet, let them scorn
me as they will, strong traits of their nature have intertwined themselves with
mine.</p>
<p>Planted deep, in the town’s earliest infancy and childhood, by these two
earnest and energetic men, the race has ever since subsisted here; always, too,
in respectability; never, so far as I have known, disgraced by a single
unworthy member; but seldom or never, on the other hand, after the first two
generations, performing any memorable deed, or so much as putting forward a
claim to public notice. Gradually, they have sunk almost out of sight; as old
houses, here and there about the streets, get covered half-way to the eaves by
the accumulation of new soil. From father to son, for above a hundred years,
they followed the sea; a grey-headed shipmaster, in each generation, retiring
from the quarter-deck to the homestead, while a boy of fourteen took the
hereditary place before the mast, confronting the salt spray and the gale which
had blustered against his sire and grandsire. The boy, also in due time, passed
from the forecastle to the cabin, spent a tempestuous manhood, and returned
from his world-wanderings, to grow old, and die, and mingle his dust with the
natal earth. This long connexion of a family with one spot, as its place of
birth and burial, creates a kindred between the human being and the locality,
quite independent of any charm in the scenery or moral circumstances that
surround him. It is not love but instinct. The new inhabitant—who came
himself from a foreign land, or whose father or grandfather came—has
little claim to be called a Salemite; he has no conception of the oyster-like
tenacity with which an old settler, over whom his third century is creeping,
clings to the spot where his successive generations have been embedded. It is
no matter that the place is joyless for him; that he is weary of the old wooden
houses, the mud and dust, the dead level of site and sentiment, the chill east
wind, and the chillest of social atmospheres;—all these, and whatever
faults besides he may see or imagine, are nothing to the purpose. The spell
survives, and just as powerfully as if the natal spot were an earthly paradise.
So has it been in my case. I felt it almost as a destiny to make Salem my home;
so that the mould of features and cast of character which had all along been
familiar here—ever, as one representative of the race lay down in the
grave, another assuming, as it were, his sentry-march along the main
street—might still in my little day be seen and recognised in the old
town. Nevertheless, this very sentiment is an evidence that the connexion,
which has become an unhealthy one, should at last be severed. Human nature will
not flourish, any more than a potato, if it be planted and re-planted, for too
long a series of generations, in the same worn-out soil. My children have had
other birth-places, and, so far as their fortunes may be within my control,
shall strike their roots into unaccustomed earth.</p>
<p>On emerging from the Old Manse, it was chiefly this strange, indolent, unjoyous
attachment for my native town that brought me to fill a place in Uncle
Sam’s brick edifice, when I might as well, or better, have gone somewhere
else. My doom was on me. It was not the first time, nor the second, that I had
gone away—as it seemed, permanently—but yet returned, like the bad
halfpenny, or as if Salem were for me the inevitable centre of the universe.
So, one fine morning I ascended the flight of granite steps, with the
President’s commission in my pocket, and was introduced to the corps of
gentlemen who were to aid me in my weighty responsibility as chief executive
officer of the Custom-House.</p>
<p>I doubt greatly—or, rather, I do not doubt at all—whether any
public functionary of the United States, either in the civil or military line,
has ever had such a patriarchal body of veterans under his orders as myself.
The whereabouts of the Oldest Inhabitant was at once settled when I looked at
them. For upwards of twenty years before this epoch, the independent position
of the Collector had kept the Salem Custom-House out of the whirlpool of
political vicissitude, which makes the tenure of office generally so fragile. A
soldier—New England’s most distinguished soldier—he stood
firmly on the pedestal of his gallant services; and, himself secure in the wise
liberality of the successive administrations through which he had held office,
he had been the safety of his subordinates in many an hour of danger and
heart-quake. General Miller was radically conservative; a man over whose kindly
nature habit had no slight influence; attaching himself strongly to familiar
faces, and with difficulty moved to change, even when change might have brought
unquestionable improvement. Thus, on taking charge of my department, I found
few but aged men. They were ancient sea-captains, for the most part, who, after
being tossed on every sea, and standing up sturdily against life’s
tempestuous blast, had finally drifted into this quiet nook, where, with little
to disturb them, except the periodical terrors of a Presidential election, they
one and all acquired a new lease of existence. Though by no means less liable
than their fellow-men to age and infirmity, they had evidently some talisman or
other that kept death at bay. Two or three of their number, as I was assured,
being gouty and rheumatic, or perhaps bed-ridden, never dreamed of making their
appearance at the Custom-House during a large part of the year; but, after a
torpid winter, would creep out into the warm sunshine of May or June, go lazily
about what they termed duty, and, at their own leisure and convenience, betake
themselves to bed again. I must plead guilty to the charge of abbreviating the
official breath of more than one of these venerable servants of the republic.
They were allowed, on my representation, to rest from their arduous labours,
and soon afterwards—as if their sole principle of life had been zeal for
their country’s service—as I verily believe it was—withdrew
to a better world. It is a pious consolation to me that, through my
interference, a sufficient space was allowed them for repentance of the evil
and corrupt practices into which, as a matter of course, every Custom-House
officer must be supposed to fall. Neither the front nor the back entrance of
the Custom-House opens on the road to Paradise.</p>
<p>The greater part of my officers were Whigs. It was well for their venerable
brotherhood that the new Surveyor was not a politician, and though a faithful
Democrat in principle, neither received nor held his office with any reference
to political services. Had it been otherwise—had an active politician
been put into this influential post, to assume the easy task of making head
against a Whig Collector, whose infirmities withheld him from the personal
administration of his office—hardly a man of the old corps would have
drawn the breath of official life within a month after the exterminating angel
had come up the Custom-House steps. According to the received code in such
matters, it would have been nothing short of duty, in a politician, to bring
every one of those white heads under the axe of the guillotine. It was plain
enough to discern that the old fellows dreaded some such discourtesy at my
hands. It pained, and at the same time amused me, to behold the terrors that
attended my advent, to see a furrowed cheek, weather-beaten by half a century
of storm, turn ashy pale at the glance of so harmless an individual as myself;
to detect, as one or another addressed me, the tremor of a voice which, in
long-past days, had been wont to bellow through a speaking-trumpet, hoarsely
enough to frighten Boreas himself to silence. They knew, these excellent old
persons, that, by all established rule—and, as regarded some of them,
weighed by their own lack of efficiency for business—they ought to have
given place to younger men, more orthodox in politics, and altogether fitter
than themselves to serve our common Uncle. I knew it, too, but could never
quite find in my heart to act upon the knowledge. Much and deservedly to my own
discredit, therefore, and considerably to the detriment of my official
conscience, they continued, during my incumbency, to creep about the wharves,
and loiter up and down the Custom-House steps. They spent a good deal of time,
also, asleep in their accustomed corners, with their chairs tilted back against
the walls; awaking, however, once or twice in the forenoon, to bore one another
with the several thousandth repetition of old sea-stories and mouldy jokes,
that had grown to be passwords and countersigns among them.</p>
<p>The discovery was soon made, I imagine, that the new Surveyor had no great harm
in him. So, with lightsome hearts and the happy consciousness of being usefully
employed—in their own behalf at least, if not for our beloved
country—these good old gentlemen went through the various formalities of
office. Sagaciously under their spectacles, did they peep into the holds of
vessels. Mighty was their fuss about little matters, and marvellous, sometimes,
the obtuseness that allowed greater ones to slip between their fingers!
Whenever such a mischance occurred—when a waggon-load of valuable
merchandise had been smuggled ashore, at noonday, perhaps, and directly beneath
their unsuspicious noses—nothing could exceed the vigilance and alacrity
with which they proceeded to lock, and double-lock, and secure with tape and
sealing-wax, all the avenues of the delinquent vessel. Instead of a reprimand
for their previous negligence, the case seemed rather to require an eulogium on
their praiseworthy caution after the mischief had happened; a grateful
recognition of the promptitude of their zeal the moment that there was no
longer any remedy.</p>
<p>Unless people are more than commonly disagreeable, it is my foolish habit to
contract a kindness for them. The better part of my companion’s
character, if it have a better part, is that which usually comes uppermost in
my regard, and forms the type whereby I recognise the man. As most of these old
Custom-House officers had good traits, and as my position in reference to them,
being paternal and protective, was favourable to the growth of friendly
sentiments, I soon grew to like them all. It was pleasant in the summer
forenoons—when the fervent heat, that almost liquefied the rest of the
human family, merely communicated a genial warmth to their half torpid
systems—it was pleasant to hear them chatting in the back entry, a row of
them all tipped against the wall, as usual; while the frozen witticisms of past
generations were thawed out, and came bubbling with laughter from their lips.
Externally, the jollity of aged men has much in common with the mirth of
children; the intellect, any more than a deep sense of humour, has little to do
with the matter; it is, with both, a gleam that plays upon the surface, and
imparts a sunny and cheery aspect alike to the green branch and grey,
mouldering trunk. In one case, however, it is real sunshine; in the other, it
more resembles the phosphorescent glow of decaying wood.</p>
<p>It would be sad injustice, the reader must understand, to represent all my
excellent old friends as in their dotage. In the first place, my coadjutors
were not invariably old; there were men among them in their strength and prime,
of marked ability and energy, and altogether superior to the sluggish and
dependent mode of life on which their evil stars had cast them. Then, moreover,
the white locks of age were sometimes found to be the thatch of an intellectual
tenement in good repair. But, as respects the majority of my corps of veterans,
there will be no wrong done if I characterize them generally as a set of
wearisome old souls, who had gathered nothing worth preservation from their
varied experience of life. They seemed to have flung away all the golden grain
of practical wisdom, which they had enjoyed so many opportunities of
harvesting, and most carefully to have stored their memory with the husks. They
spoke with far more interest and unction of their morning’s breakfast, or
yesterday’s, today’s, or tomorrow’s dinner, than of the
shipwreck of forty or fifty years ago, and all the world’s wonders which
they had witnessed with their youthful eyes.</p>
<p>The father of the Custom-House—the patriarch, not only of this little
squad of officials, but, I am bold to say, of the respectable body of
tide-waiters all over the United States—was a certain permanent
Inspector. He might truly be termed a legitimate son of the revenue system,
dyed in the wool, or rather born in the purple; since his sire, a Revolutionary
colonel, and formerly collector of the port, had created an office for him, and
appointed him to fill it, at a period of the early ages which few living men
can now remember. This Inspector, when I first knew him, was a man of fourscore
years, or thereabouts, and certainly one of the most wonderful specimens of
winter-green that you would be likely to discover in a lifetime’s search.
With his florid cheek, his compact figure smartly arrayed in a bright-buttoned
blue coat, his brisk and vigorous step, and his hale and hearty aspect,
altogether he seemed—not young, indeed—but a kind of new
contrivance of Mother Nature in the shape of man, whom age and infirmity had no
business to touch. His voice and laugh, which perpetually re-echoed through the
Custom-House, had nothing of the tremulous quaver and cackle of an old
man’s utterance; they came strutting out of his lungs, like the crow of a
cock, or the blast of a clarion. Looking at him merely as an animal—and
there was very little else to look at—he was a most satisfactory object,
from the thorough healthfulness and wholesomeness of his system, and his
capacity, at that extreme age, to enjoy all, or nearly all, the delights which
he had ever aimed at or conceived of. The careless security of his life in the
Custom-House, on a regular income, and with but slight and infrequent
apprehensions of removal, had no doubt contributed to make time pass lightly
over him. The original and more potent causes, however, lay in the rare
perfection of his animal nature, the moderate proportion of intellect, and the
very trifling admixture of moral and spiritual ingredients; these latter
qualities, indeed, being in barely enough measure to keep the old gentleman
from walking on all-fours. He possessed no power of thought, no depth of
feeling, no troublesome sensibilities: nothing, in short, but a few commonplace
instincts, which, aided by the cheerful temper which grew inevitably out of his
physical well-being, did duty very respectably, and to general acceptance, in
lieu of a heart. He had been the husband of three wives, all long since dead;
the father of twenty children, most of whom, at every age of childhood or
maturity, had likewise returned to dust. Here, one would suppose, might have
been sorrow enough to imbue the sunniest disposition through and through with a
sable tinge. Not so with our old Inspector. One brief sigh sufficed to carry
off the entire burden of these dismal reminiscences. The next moment he was as
ready for sport as any unbreeched infant: far readier than the
Collector’s junior clerk, who at nineteen years was much the elder and
graver man of the two.</p>
<p>I used to watch and study this patriarchal personage with, I think, livelier
curiosity than any other form of humanity there presented to my notice. He was,
in truth, a rare phenomenon; so perfect, in one point of view; so shallow, so
delusive, so impalpable such an absolute nonentity, in every other. My
conclusion was that he had no soul, no heart, no mind; nothing, as I have
already said, but instincts; and yet, withal, so cunningly had the few
materials of his character been put together that there was no painful
perception of deficiency, but, on my part, an entire contentment with what I
found in him. It might be difficult—and it was so—to conceive how
he should exist hereafter, so earthly and sensuous did he seem; but surely his
existence here, admitting that it was to terminate with his last breath, had
been not unkindly given; with no higher moral responsibilities than the beasts
of the field, but with a larger scope of enjoyment than theirs, and with all
their blessed immunity from the dreariness and duskiness of age.</p>
<p>One point in which he had vastly the advantage over his four-footed brethren
was his ability to recollect the good dinners which it had made no small
portion of the happiness of his life to eat. His gourmandism was a highly
agreeable trait; and to hear him talk of roast meat was as appetizing as a
pickle or an oyster. As he possessed no higher attribute, and neither
sacrificed nor vitiated any spiritual endowment by devoting all his energies
and ingenuities to subserve the delight and profit of his maw, it always
pleased and satisfied me to hear him expatiate on fish, poultry, and
butcher’s meat, and the most eligible methods of preparing them for the
table. His reminiscences of good cheer, however ancient the date of the actual
banquet, seemed to bring the savour of pig or turkey under one’s very
nostrils. There were flavours on his palate that had lingered there not less
than sixty or seventy years, and were still apparently as fresh as that of the
mutton chop which he had just devoured for his breakfast. I have heard him
smack his lips over dinners, every guest at which, except himself, had long
been food for worms. It was marvellous to observe how the ghosts of bygone
meals were continually rising up before him—not in anger or retribution,
but as if grateful for his former appreciation, and seeking to reduplicate an
endless series of enjoyment, at once shadowy and sensual: a tenderloin of beef,
a hind-quarter of veal, a spare-rib of pork, a particular chicken, or a
remarkably praiseworthy turkey, which had perhaps adorned his board in the days
of the elder Adams, would be remembered; while all the subsequent experience of
our race, and all the events that brightened or darkened his individual career,
had gone over him with as little permanent effect as the passing breeze. The
chief tragic event of the old man’s life, so far as I could judge, was
his mishap with a certain goose, which lived and died some twenty or forty
years ago: a goose of most promising figure, but which, at table, proved so
inveterately tough, that the carving-knife would make no impression on its
carcase, and it could only be divided with an axe and handsaw.</p>
<p>But it is time to quit this sketch; on which, however, I should be glad to
dwell at considerably more length, because of all men whom I have ever known,
this individual was fittest to be a Custom-House officer. Most persons, owing
to causes which I may not have space to hint at, suffer moral detriment from
this peculiar mode of life. The old Inspector was incapable of it; and, were he
to continue in office to the end of time, would be just as good as he was then,
and sit down to dinner with just as good an appetite.</p>
<p>There is one likeness, without which my gallery of Custom-House portraits would
be strangely incomplete, but which my comparatively few opportunities for
observation enable me to sketch only in the merest outline. It is that of the
Collector, our gallant old General, who, after his brilliant military service,
subsequently to which he had ruled over a wild Western territory, had come
hither, twenty years before, to spend the decline of his varied and honourable
life.</p>
<p>The brave soldier had already numbered, nearly or quite, his three-score years
and ten, and was pursuing the remainder of his earthly march, burdened with
infirmities which even the martial music of his own spirit-stirring
recollections could do little towards lightening. The step was palsied now,
that had been foremost in the charge. It was only with the assistance of a
servant, and by leaning his hand heavily on the iron balustrade, that he could
slowly and painfully ascend the Custom-House steps, and, with a toilsome
progress across the floor, attain his customary chair beside the fireplace.
There he used to sit, gazing with a somewhat dim serenity of aspect at the
figures that came and went, amid the rustle of papers, the administering of
oaths, the discussion of business, and the casual talk of the office; all which
sounds and circumstances seemed but indistinctly to impress his senses, and
hardly to make their way into his inner sphere of contemplation. His
countenance, in this repose, was mild and kindly. If his notice was sought, an
expression of courtesy and interest gleamed out upon his features, proving that
there was light within him, and that it was only the outward medium of the
intellectual lamp that obstructed the rays in their passage. The closer you
penetrated to the substance of his mind, the sounder it appeared. When no
longer called upon to speak or listen—either of which operations cost him
an evident effort—his face would briefly subside into its former not
uncheerful quietude. It was not painful to behold this look; for, though dim,
it had not the imbecility of decaying age. The framework of his nature,
originally strong and massive, was not yet crumpled into ruin.</p>
<p>To observe and define his character, however, under such disadvantages, was as
difficult a task as to trace out and build up anew, in imagination, an old
fortress, like Ticonderoga, from a view of its grey and broken ruins. Here and
there, perchance, the walls may remain almost complete; but elsewhere may be
only a shapeless mound, cumbrous with its very strength, and overgrown, through
long years of peace and neglect, with grass and alien weeds.</p>
<p>Nevertheless, looking at the old warrior with affection—for, slight as
was the communication between us, my feeling towards him, like that of all
bipeds and quadrupeds who knew him, might not improperly be termed so,—I
could discern the main points of his portrait. It was marked with the noble and
heroic qualities which showed it to be not a mere accident, but of good right,
that he had won a distinguished name. His spirit could never, I conceive, have
been characterized by an uneasy activity; it must, at any period of his life,
have required an impulse to set him in motion; but once stirred up, with
obstacles to overcome, and an adequate object to be attained, it was not in the
man to give out or fail. The heat that had formerly pervaded his nature, and
which was not yet extinct, was never of the kind that flashes and flickers in a
blaze; but rather a deep red glow, as of iron in a furnace. Weight, solidity,
firmness—this was the expression of his repose, even in such decay as had
crept untimely over him at the period of which I speak. But I could imagine,
even then, that, under some excitement which should go deeply into his
consciousness—roused by a trumpet’s peal, loud enough to awaken all
of his energies that were not dead, but only slumbering—he was yet
capable of flinging off his infirmities like a sick man’s gown, dropping
the staff of age to seize a battle-sword, and starting up once more a warrior.
And, in so intense a moment his demeanour would have still been calm. Such an
exhibition, however, was but to be pictured in fancy; not to be anticipated,
nor desired. What I saw in him—as evidently as the indestructible
ramparts of Old Ticonderoga, already cited as the most appropriate
simile—was the features of stubborn and ponderous endurance, which might
well have amounted to obstinacy in his earlier days; of integrity, that, like
most of his other endowments, lay in a somewhat heavy mass, and was just as
unmalleable or unmanageable as a ton of iron ore; and of benevolence which,
fiercely as he led the bayonets on at Chippewa or Fort Erie, I take to be of
quite as genuine a stamp as what actuates any or all the polemical
philanthropists of the age. He had slain men with his own hand, for aught I
know—certainly, they had fallen like blades of grass at the sweep of the
scythe before the charge to which his spirit imparted its triumphant
energy—but, be that as it might, there was never in his heart so much
cruelty as would have brushed the down off a butterfly’s wing. I have not
known the man to whose innate kindliness I would more confidently make an
appeal.</p>
<p>Many characteristics—and those, too, which contribute not the least
forcibly to impart resemblance in a sketch—must have vanished, or been
obscured, before I met the General. All merely graceful attributes are usually
the most evanescent; nor does nature adorn the human ruin with blossoms of new
beauty, that have their roots and proper nutriment only in the chinks and
crevices of decay, as she sows wall-flowers over the ruined fortress of
Ticonderoga. Still, even in respect of grace and beauty, there were points well
worth noting. A ray of humour, now and then, would make its way through the
veil of dim obstruction, and glimmer pleasantly upon our faces. A trait of
native elegance, seldom seen in the masculine character after childhood or
early youth, was shown in the General’s fondness for the sight and
fragrance of flowers. An old soldier might be supposed to prize only the bloody
laurel on his brow; but here was one who seemed to have a young girl’s
appreciation of the floral tribe.</p>
<p>There, beside the fireplace, the brave old General used to sit; while the
Surveyor—though seldom, when it could be avoided, taking upon himself the
difficult task of engaging him in conversation—was fond of standing at a
distance, and watching his quiet and almost slumberous countenance. He seemed
away from us, although we saw him but a few yards off; remote, though we passed
close beside his chair; unattainable, though we might have stretched forth our
hands and touched his own. It might be that he lived a more real life within
his thoughts than amid the unappropriate environment of the Collector’s
office. The evolutions of the parade; the tumult of the battle; the flourish of
old heroic music, heard thirty years before—such scenes and sounds,
perhaps, were all alive before his intellectual sense. Meanwhile, the merchants
and ship-masters, the spruce clerks and uncouth sailors, entered and departed;
the bustle of his commercial and Custom-House life kept up its little murmur
round about him; and neither with the men nor their affairs did the General
appear to sustain the most distant relation. He was as much out of place as an
old sword—now rusty, but which had flashed once in the battle’s
front, and showed still a bright gleam along its blade—would have been
among the inkstands, paper-folders, and mahogany rulers on the Deputy
Collector’s desk.</p>
<p>There was one thing that much aided me in renewing and re-creating the stalwart
soldier of the Niagara frontier—the man of true and simple energy. It was
the recollection of those memorable words of his—“I’ll try,
Sir”—spoken on the very verge of a desperate and heroic enterprise,
and breathing the soul and spirit of New England hardihood, comprehending all
perils, and encountering all. If, in our country, valour were rewarded by
heraldic honour, this phrase—which it seems so easy to speak, but which
only he, with such a task of danger and glory before him, has ever
spoken—would be the best and fittest of all mottoes for the
General’s shield of arms.</p>
<p>It contributes greatly towards a man’s moral and intellectual health to
be brought into habits of companionship with individuals unlike himself, who
care little for his pursuits, and whose sphere and abilities he must go out of
himself to appreciate. The accidents of my life have often afforded me this
advantage, but never with more fulness and variety than during my continuance
in office. There was one man, especially, the observation of whose character
gave me a new idea of talent. His gifts were emphatically those of a man of
business; prompt, acute, clear-minded; with an eye that saw through all
perplexities, and a faculty of arrangement that made them vanish as by the
waving of an enchanter’s wand. Bred up from boyhood in the Custom-House,
it was his proper field of activity; and the many intricacies of business, so
harassing to the interloper, presented themselves before him with the
regularity of a perfectly comprehended system. In my contemplation, he stood as
the ideal of his class. He was, indeed, the Custom-House in himself; or, at all
events, the mainspring that kept its variously revolving wheels in motion; for,
in an institution like this, where its officers are appointed to subserve their
own profit and convenience, and seldom with a leading reference to their
fitness for the duty to be performed, they must perforce seek elsewhere the
dexterity which is not in them. Thus, by an inevitable necessity, as a magnet
attracts steel-filings, so did our man of business draw to himself the
difficulties which everybody met with. With an easy condescension, and kind
forbearance towards our stupidity—which, to his order of mind, must have
seemed little short of crime—would he forth-with, by the merest touch of
his finger, make the incomprehensible as clear as daylight. The merchants
valued him not less than we, his esoteric friends. His integrity was perfect;
it was a law of nature with him, rather than a choice or a principle; nor can
it be otherwise than the main condition of an intellect so remarkably clear and
accurate as his to be honest and regular in the administration of affairs. A
stain on his conscience, as to anything that came within the range of his
vocation, would trouble such a man very much in the same way, though to a far
greater degree, than an error in the balance of an account, or an ink-blot on
the fair page of a book of record. Here, in a word—and it is a rare
instance in my life—I had met with a person thoroughly adapted to the
situation which he held.</p>
<p>Such were some of the people with whom I now found myself connected. I took it
in good part, at the hands of Providence, that I was thrown into a position so
little akin to my past habits; and set myself seriously to gather from it
whatever profit was to be had. After my fellowship of toil and impracticable
schemes with the dreamy brethren of Brook Farm; after living for three years
within the subtle influence of an intellect like Emerson’s; after those
wild, free days on the Assabeth, indulging fantastic speculations, beside our
fire of fallen boughs, with Ellery Channing; after talking with Thoreau about
pine-trees and Indian relics in his hermitage at Walden; after growing
fastidious by sympathy with the classic refinement of Hillard’s culture;
after becoming imbued with poetic sentiment at Longfellow’s
hearthstone—it was time, at length, that I should exercise other
faculties of my nature, and nourish myself with food for which I had hitherto
had little appetite. Even the old Inspector was desirable, as a change of diet,
to a man who had known Alcott. I looked upon it as an evidence, in some
measure, of a system naturally well balanced, and lacking no essential part of
a thorough organization, that, with such associates to remember, I could mingle
at once with men of altogether different qualities, and never murmur at the
change.</p>
<p>Literature, its exertions and objects, were now of little moment in my regard.
I cared not at this period for books; they were apart from me.
Nature—except it were human nature—the nature that is developed in
earth and sky, was, in one sense, hidden from me; and all the imaginative
delight wherewith it had been spiritualized passed away out of my mind. A gift,
a faculty, if it had not been departed, was suspended and inanimate within me.
There would have been something sad, unutterably dreary, in all this, had I not
been conscious that it lay at my own option to recall whatever was valuable in
the past. It might be true, indeed, that this was a life which could not, with
impunity, be lived too long; else, it might make me permanently other than I
had been, without transforming me into any shape which it would be worth my
while to take. But I never considered it as other than a transitory life. There
was always a prophetic instinct, a low whisper in my ear, that within no long
period, and whenever a new change of custom should be essential to my good,
change would come.</p>
<p>Meanwhile, there I was, a Surveyor of the Revenue and, so far as I have been
able to understand, as good a Surveyor as need be. A man of thought, fancy, and
sensibility (had he ten times the Surveyor’s proportion of those
qualities), may, at any time, be a man of affairs, if he will only choose to
give himself the trouble. My fellow-officers, and the merchants and
sea-captains with whom my official duties brought me into any manner of
connection, viewed me in no other light, and probably knew me in no other
character. None of them, I presume, had ever read a page of my inditing, or
would have cared a fig the more for me if they had read them all; nor would it
have mended the matter, in the least, had those same unprofitable pages been
written with a pen like that of Burns or of Chaucer, each of whom was a
Custom-House officer in his day, as well as I. It is a good lesson—though
it may often be a hard one—for a man who has dreamed of literary fame,
and of making for himself a rank among the world’s dignitaries by such
means, to step aside out of the narrow circle in which his claims are
recognized and to find how utterly devoid of significance, beyond that circle,
is all that he achieves, and all he aims at. I know not that I especially
needed the lesson, either in the way of warning or rebuke; but at any rate, I
learned it thoroughly: nor, it gives me pleasure to reflect, did the truth, as
it came home to my perception, ever cost me a pang, or require to be thrown off
in a sigh. In the way of literary talk, it is true, the Naval Officer—an
excellent fellow, who came into the office with me, and went out only a little
later—would often engage me in a discussion about one or the other of his
favourite topics, Napoleon or Shakespeare. The Collector’s junior clerk,
too a young gentleman who, it was whispered occasionally covered a sheet of
Uncle Sam’s letter paper with what (at the distance of a few yards)
looked very much like poetry—used now and then to speak to me of books,
as matters with which I might possibly be conversant. This was my all of
lettered intercourse; and it was quite sufficient for my necessities.</p>
<p>No longer seeking nor caring that my name should be blasoned abroad on
title-pages, I smiled to think that it had now another kind of vogue. The
Custom-House marker imprinted it, with a stencil and black paint, on
pepper-bags, and baskets of anatto, and cigar-boxes, and bales of all kinds of
dutiable merchandise, in testimony that these commodities had paid the impost,
and gone regularly through the office. Borne on such queer vehicle of fame, a
knowledge of my existence, so far as a name conveys it, was carried where it
had never been before, and, I hope, will never go again.</p>
<p>But the past was not dead. Once in a great while, the thoughts that had seemed
so vital and so active, yet had been put to rest so quietly, revived again. One
of the most remarkable occasions, when the habit of bygone days awoke in me,
was that which brings it within the law of literary propriety to offer the
public the sketch which I am now writing.</p>
<p>In the second storey of the Custom-House there is a large room, in which the
brick-work and naked rafters have never been covered with panelling and
plaster. The edifice—originally projected on a scale adapted to the old
commercial enterprise of the port, and with an idea of subsequent prosperity
destined never to be realized—contains far more space than its occupants
know what to do with. This airy hall, therefore, over the Collector’s
apartments, remains unfinished to this day, and, in spite of the aged cobwebs
that festoon its dusky beams, appears still to await the labour of the
carpenter and mason. At one end of the room, in a recess, were a number of
barrels piled one upon another, containing bundles of official documents. Large
quantities of similar rubbish lay lumbering the floor. It was sorrowful to
think how many days, and weeks, and months, and years of toil had been wasted
on these musty papers, which were now only an encumbrance on earth, and were
hidden away in this forgotten corner, never more to be glanced at by human
eyes. But then, what reams of other manuscripts—filled, not with the
dulness of official formalities, but with the thought of inventive brains and
the rich effusion of deep hearts—had gone equally to oblivion; and that,
moreover, without serving a purpose in their day, as these heaped-up papers
had, and—saddest of all—without purchasing for their writers the
comfortable livelihood which the clerks of the Custom-House had gained by these
worthless scratchings of the pen. Yet not altogether worthless, perhaps, as
materials of local history. Here, no doubt, statistics of the former commerce
of Salem might be discovered, and memorials of her princely merchants—old
King Derby—old Billy Gray—old Simon Forrester—and many
another magnate in his day, whose powdered head, however, was scarcely in the
tomb before his mountain pile of wealth began to dwindle. The founders of the
greater part of the families which now compose the aristocracy of Salem might
here be traced, from the petty and obscure beginnings of their traffic, at
periods generally much posterior to the Revolution, upward to what their
children look upon as long-established rank.</p>
<p>Prior to the Revolution there is a dearth of records; the earlier documents and
archives of the Custom-House having, probably, been carried off to Halifax,
when all the king’s officials accompanied the British army in its flight
from Boston. It has often been a matter of regret with me; for, going back,
perhaps, to the days of the Protectorate, those papers must have contained many
references to forgotten or remembered men, and to antique customs, which would
have affected me with the same pleasure as when I used to pick up Indian
arrow-heads in the field near the Old Manse.</p>
<p>But, one idle and rainy day, it was my fortune to make a discovery of some
little interest. Poking and burrowing into the heaped-up rubbish in the corner,
unfolding one and another document, and reading the names of vessels that had
long ago foundered at sea or rotted at the wharves, and those of merchants
never heard of now on ’Change, nor very readily decipherable on their
mossy tombstones; glancing at such matters with the saddened, weary,
half-reluctant interest which we bestow on the corpse of dead
activity—and exerting my fancy, sluggish with little use, to raise up
from these dry bones an image of the old town’s brighter aspect, when
India was a new region, and only Salem knew the way thither—I chanced to
lay my hand on a small package, carefully done up in a piece of ancient yellow
parchment. This envelope had the air of an official record of some period long
past, when clerks engrossed their stiff and formal chirography on more
substantial materials than at present. There was something about it that
quickened an instinctive curiosity, and made me undo the faded red tape that
tied up the package, with the sense that a treasure would here be brought to
light. Unbending the rigid folds of the parchment cover, I found it to be a
commission, under the hand and seal of Governor Shirley, in favour of one
Jonathan Pue, as Surveyor of His Majesty’s Customs for the Port of Salem,
in the Province of Massachusetts Bay. I remembered to have read (probably in
Felt’s “Annals”) a notice of the decease of Mr. Surveyor Pue,
about fourscore years ago; and likewise, in a newspaper of recent times, an
account of the digging up of his remains in the little graveyard of St.
Peter’s Church, during the renewal of that edifice. Nothing, if I rightly
call to mind, was left of my respected predecessor, save an imperfect skeleton,
and some fragments of apparel, and a wig of majestic frizzle, which, unlike the
head that it once adorned, was in very satisfactory preservation. But, on
examining the papers which the parchment commission served to envelop, I found
more traces of Mr. Pue’s mental part, and the internal operations of his
head, than the frizzled wig had contained of the venerable skull itself.</p>
<p>They were documents, in short, not official, but of a private nature, or, at
least, written in his private capacity, and apparently with his own hand. I
could account for their being included in the heap of Custom-House lumber only
by the fact that Mr. Pue’s death had happened suddenly, and that these
papers, which he probably kept in his official desk, had never come to the
knowledge of his heirs, or were supposed to relate to the business of the
revenue. On the transfer of the archives to Halifax, this package, proving to
be of no public concern, was left behind, and had remained ever since unopened.</p>
<p>The ancient Surveyor—being little molested, I suppose, at that early day
with business pertaining to his office—seems to have devoted some of his
many leisure hours to researches as a local antiquarian, and other inquisitions
of a similar nature. These supplied material for petty activity to a mind that
would otherwise have been eaten up with rust. A portion of his facts,
by the by, did me good service in the preparation of the article entitled
“M<small>AIN</small> S<small>TREET</small>,” included in the
present volume. The remainder may perhaps be applied to purposes equally
valuable hereafter, or not impossibly may be worked up, so far as they go, into
a regular history of Salem, should my veneration for the natal soil ever impel
me to so pious a task. Meanwhile, they shall be at the command of any
gentleman, inclined and competent, to take the unprofitable labour off my
hands. As a final disposition I contemplate depositing them with the Essex
Historical Society. But the object that most drew my attention to the
mysterious package was a certain affair of fine red cloth, much worn and faded,
There were traces about it of gold embroidery, which, however, was greatly
frayed and defaced, so that none, or very little, of the glitter was left. It
had been wrought, as was easy to perceive, with wonderful skill of needlework;
and the stitch (as I am assured by ladies conversant with such mysteries) gives
evidence of a now forgotten art, not to be discovered even by the process of
picking out the threads. This rag of scarlet cloth—for time, and wear,
and a sacrilegious moth had reduced it to little other than a rag—on
careful examination, assumed the shape of a letter.</p>
<p>It was the capital letter A. By an accurate measurement, each limb proved to be
precisely three inches and a quarter in length. It had been intended, there
could be no doubt, as an ornamental article of dress; but how it was to be
worn, or what rank, honour, and dignity, in by-past times, were signified by
it, was a riddle which (so evanescent are the fashions of the world in these
particulars) I saw little hope of solving. And yet it strangely interested me.
My eyes fastened themselves upon the old scarlet letter, and would not be
turned aside. Certainly there was some deep meaning in it most worthy of
interpretation, and which, as it were, streamed forth from the mystic symbol,
subtly communicating itself to my sensibilities, but evading the analysis of my
mind.</p>
<p>When thus perplexed—and cogitating, among other hypotheses, whether the
letter might not have been one of those decorations which the white men used to
contrive in order to take the eyes of Indians—I happened to place it on
my breast. It seemed to me—the reader may smile, but must not doubt my
word—it seemed to me, then, that I experienced a sensation not altogether
physical, yet almost so, as of burning heat, and as if the letter were not of
red cloth, but red-hot iron. I shuddered, and involuntarily let it fall upon
the floor.</p>
<p>In the absorbing contemplation of the scarlet letter, I had hitherto neglected
to examine a small roll of dingy paper, around which it had been twisted. This
I now opened, and had the satisfaction to find recorded by the old
Surveyor’s pen, a reasonably complete explanation of the whole affair.
There were several foolscap sheets, containing many particulars respecting the
life and conversation of one Hester Prynne, who appeared to have been rather a
noteworthy personage in the view of our ancestors. She had flourished during
the period between the early days of Massachusetts and the close of the
seventeenth century. Aged persons, alive in the time of Mr. Surveyor Pue, and
from whose oral testimony he had made up his narrative, remembered her, in
their youth, as a very old, but not decrepit woman, of a stately and solemn
aspect. It had been her habit, from an almost immemorial date, to go about the
country as a kind of voluntary nurse, and doing whatever miscellaneous good she
might; taking upon herself, likewise, to give advice in all matters, especially
those of the heart, by which means—as a person of such propensities
inevitably must—she gained from many people the reverence due to an
angel, but, I should imagine, was looked upon by others as an intruder and a
nuisance. Prying further into the manuscript, I found the record of other
doings and sufferings of this singular woman, for most of which the reader is
referred to the story entitled “T<small>HE</small> S<small>CARLET</small>
L<small>ETTER</small>”; and it should be borne carefully in mind that the
main facts of that story are authorized and authenticated by the document of
Mr. Surveyor Pue. The original papers, together with the scarlet letter
itself—a most curious relic—are still in my possession, and shall
be freely exhibited to whomsoever, induced by the great interest of the
narrative, may desire a sight of them. I must not be understood affirming that,
in the dressing up of the tale, and imagining the motives and modes of passion
that influenced the characters who figure in it, I have invariably confined
myself within the limits of the old Surveyor’s half-a-dozen sheets of
foolscap. On the contrary, I have allowed myself, as to such points, nearly, or
altogether, as much license as if the facts had been entirely of my own
invention. What I contend for is the authenticity of the outline.</p>
<p>This incident recalled my mind, in some degree, to its old track. There seemed
to be here the groundwork of a tale. It impressed me as if the ancient
Surveyor, in his garb of a hundred years gone by, and wearing his immortal
wig—which was buried with him, but did not perish in the grave—had
met me in the deserted chamber of the Custom-House. In his port was the dignity
of one who had borne His Majesty’s commission, and who was therefore
illuminated by a ray of the splendour that shone so dazzlingly about the
throne. How unlike alas the hangdog look of a republican official, who, as the
servant of the people, feels himself less than the least, and below the lowest
of his masters. With his own ghostly hand, the obscurely seen, but majestic,
figure had imparted to me the scarlet symbol and the little roll of explanatory
manuscript. With his own ghostly voice he had exhorted me, on the sacred
consideration of my filial duty and reverence towards him—who might
reasonably regard himself as my official ancestor—to bring his mouldy and
moth-eaten lucubrations before the public. “Do this,” said the
ghost of Mr. Surveyor Pue, emphatically nodding the head that looked so
imposing within its memorable wig; “do this, and the profit shall be all
your own. You will shortly need it; for it is not in your days as it was in
mine, when a man’s office was a life-lease, and oftentimes an heirloom.
But I charge you, in this matter of old Mistress Prynne, give to your
predecessor’s memory the credit which will be rightfully due” And I
said to the ghost of Mr. Surveyor Pue—“I will”.</p>
<p>On Hester Prynne’s story, therefore, I bestowed much thought. It was the
subject of my meditations for many an hour, while pacing to and fro across my
room, or traversing, with a hundredfold repetition, the long extent from the
front door of the Custom-House to the side entrance, and back again. Great were
the weariness and annoyance of the old Inspector and the Weighers and Gaugers,
whose slumbers were disturbed by the unmercifully lengthened tramp of my
passing and returning footsteps. Remembering their own former habits, they used
to say that the Surveyor was walking the quarter-deck. They probably fancied
that my sole object—and, indeed, the sole object for which a sane man
could ever put himself into voluntary motion—was to get an appetite for
dinner. And, to say the truth, an appetite, sharpened by the east wind that
generally blew along the passage, was the only valuable result of so much
indefatigable exercise. So little adapted is the atmosphere of a Custom-house
to the delicate harvest of fancy and sensibility, that, had I remained there
through ten Presidencies yet to come, I doubt whether the tale of “The
Scarlet Letter” would ever have been brought before the public eye. My
imagination was a tarnished mirror. It would not reflect, or only with
miserable dimness, the figures with which I did my best to people it. The
characters of the narrative would not be warmed and rendered malleable by any
heat that I could kindle at my intellectual forge. They would take neither the
glow of passion nor the tenderness of sentiment, but retained all the rigidity
of dead corpses, and stared me in the face with a fixed and ghastly grin of
contemptuous defiance. “What have you to do with us?” that
expression seemed to say. “The little power you might have once possessed
over the tribe of unrealities is gone! You have bartered it for a pittance of
the public gold. Go then, and earn your wages!” In short, the almost
torpid creatures of my own fancy twitted me with imbecility, and not without
fair occasion.</p>
<p>It was not merely during the three hours and a half which Uncle Sam claimed as
his share of my daily life that this wretched numbness held possession of me.
It went with me on my sea-shore walks and rambles into the country,
whenever—which was seldom and reluctantly—I bestirred myself to
seek that invigorating charm of Nature which used to give me such freshness and
activity of thought, the moment that I stepped across the threshold of the Old
Manse. The same torpor, as regarded the capacity for intellectual effort,
accompanied me home, and weighed upon me in the chamber which I most absurdly
termed my study. Nor did it quit me when, late at night, I sat in the deserted
parlour, lighted only by the glimmering coal-fire and the moon, striving to
picture forth imaginary scenes, which, the next day, might flow out on the
brightening page in many-hued description.</p>
<p>If the imaginative faculty refused to act at such an hour, it might well be
deemed a hopeless case. Moonlight, in a familiar room, falling so white upon
the carpet, and showing all its figures so distinctly—making every object
so minutely visible, yet so unlike a morning or noontide visibility—is a
medium the most suitable for a romance-writer to get acquainted with his
illusive guests. There is the little domestic scenery of the well-known
apartment; the chairs, with each its separate individuality; the centre-table,
sustaining a work-basket, a volume or two, and an extinguished lamp; the sofa;
the book-case; the picture on the wall—all these details, so completely
seen, are so spiritualised by the unusual light, that they seem to lose their
actual substance, and become things of intellect. Nothing is too small or too
trifling to undergo this change, and acquire dignity thereby. A child’s
shoe; the doll, seated in her little wicker carriage; the
hobby-horse—whatever, in a word, has been used or played with during the
day is now invested with a quality of strangeness and remoteness, though still
almost as vividly present as by daylight. Thus, therefore, the floor of our
familiar room has become a neutral territory, somewhere between the real world
and fairy-land, where the Actual and the Imaginary may meet, and each imbue
itself with the nature of the other. Ghosts might enter here without
affrighting us. It would be too much in keeping with the scene to excite
surprise, were we to look about us and discover a form, beloved, but gone
hence, now sitting quietly in a streak of this magic moonshine, with an aspect
that would make us doubt whether it had returned from afar, or had never once
stirred from our fireside.</p>
<p>The somewhat dim coal fire has an essential Influence in producing the effect
which I would describe. It throws its unobtrusive tinge throughout the room,
with a faint ruddiness upon the walls and ceiling, and a reflected gleam upon
the polish of the furniture. This warmer light mingles itself with the cold
spirituality of the moon-beams, and communicates, as it were, a heart and
sensibilities of human tenderness to the forms which fancy summons up. It
converts them from snow-images into men and women. Glancing at the
looking-glass, we behold—deep within its haunted verge—the
smouldering glow of the half-extinguished anthracite, the white moon-beams on
the floor, and a repetition of all the gleam and shadow of the picture, with
one remove further from the actual, and nearer to the imaginative. Then, at
such an hour, and with this scene before him, if a man, sitting all alone,
cannot dream strange things, and make them look like truth, he need never try
to write romances.</p>
<p>But, for myself, during the whole of my Custom-House experience, moonlight and
sunshine, and the glow of firelight, were just alike in my regard; and neither
of them was of one whit more avail than the twinkle of a tallow-candle. An
entire class of susceptibilities, and a gift connected with them—of no
great richness or value, but the best I had—was gone from me.</p>
<p>It is my belief, however, that had I attempted a different order of
composition, my faculties would not have been found so pointless and
inefficacious. I might, for instance, have contented myself with writing out
the narratives of a veteran shipmaster, one of the Inspectors, whom I should be
most ungrateful not to mention, since scarcely a day passed that he did not
stir me to laughter and admiration by his marvelous gifts as a story-teller.
Could I have preserved the picturesque force of his style, and the humourous
colouring which nature taught him how to throw over his descriptions, the
result, I honestly believe, would have been something new in literature. Or I
might readily have found a more serious task. It was a folly, with the
materiality of this daily life pressing so intrusively upon me, to attempt to
fling myself back into another age, or to insist on creating the semblance of a
world out of airy matter, when, at every moment, the impalpable beauty of my
soap-bubble was broken by the rude contact of some actual circumstance. The
wiser effort would have been to diffuse thought and imagination through the
opaque substance of today, and thus to make it a bright transparency; to
spiritualise the burden that began to weigh so heavily; to seek, resolutely,
the true and indestructible value that lay hidden in the petty and wearisome
incidents, and ordinary characters with which I was now conversant. The fault
was mine. The page of life that was spread out before me seemed dull and
commonplace only because I had not fathomed its deeper import. A better book
than I shall ever write was there; leaf after leaf presenting itself to me,
just as it was written out by the reality of the flitting hour, and vanishing
as fast as written, only because my brain wanted the insight, and my hand the
cunning, to transcribe it. At some future day, it may be, I shall remember a
few scattered fragments and broken paragraphs, and write them down, and find
the letters turn to gold upon the page.</p>
<p>These perceptions had come too late. At the Instant, I was only conscious that
what would have been a pleasure once was now a hopeless toil. There was no
occasion to make much moan about this state of affairs. I had ceased to be a
writer of tolerably poor tales and essays, and had become a tolerably good
Surveyor of the Customs. That was all. But, nevertheless, it is anything but
agreeable to be haunted by a suspicion that one’s intellect is dwindling
away, or exhaling, without your consciousness, like ether out of a phial; so
that, at every glance, you find a smaller and less volatile residuum. Of the
fact there could be no doubt and, examining myself and others, I was led to
conclusions, in reference to the effect of public office on the character, not
very favourable to the mode of life in question. In some other form, perhaps, I
may hereafter develop these effects. Suffice it here to say that a Custom-House
officer of long continuance can hardly be a very praiseworthy or respectable
personage, for many reasons; one of them, the tenure by which he holds his
situation, and another, the very nature of his business, which—though, I
trust, an honest one—is of such a sort that he does not share in the
united effort of mankind.</p>
<p>An effect—which I believe to be observable, more or less, in every
individual who has occupied the position—is, that while he leans on the
mighty arm of the Republic, his own proper strength departs from him. He loses,
in an extent proportioned to the weakness or force of his original nature, the
capability of self-support. If he possesses an unusual share of native energy,
or the enervating magic of place do not operate too long upon him, his
forfeited powers may be redeemable. The ejected officer—fortunate in the
unkindly shove that sends him forth betimes, to struggle amid a struggling
world—may return to himself, and become all that he has ever been. But
this seldom happens. He usually keeps his ground just long enough for his own
ruin, and is then thrust out, with sinews all unstrung, to totter along the
difficult footpath of life as he best may. Conscious of his own
infirmity—that his tempered steel and elasticity are lost—he for
ever afterwards looks wistfully about him in quest of support external to
himself. His pervading and continual hope—a hallucination, which, in the
face of all discouragement, and making light of impossibilities, haunts him
while he lives, and, I fancy, like the convulsive throes of the cholera,
torments him for a brief space after death—is, that finally, and in no
long time, by some happy coincidence of circumstances, he shall be restored to
office. This faith, more than anything else, steals the pith and availability
out of whatever enterprise he may dream of undertaking. Why should he toil and
moil, and be at so much trouble to pick himself up out of the mud, when, in a
little while hence, the strong arm of his Uncle will raise and support him? Why
should he work for his living here, or go to dig gold in California, when he is
so soon to be made happy, at monthly intervals, with a little pile of
glittering coin out of his Uncle’s pocket? It is sadly curious to observe
how slight a taste of office suffices to infect a poor fellow with this
singular disease. Uncle Sam’s gold—meaning no disrespect to the
worthy old gentleman—has, in this respect, a quality of enchantment like
that of the devil’s wages. Whoever touches it should look well to
himself, or he may find the bargain to go hard against him, involving, if not
his soul, yet many of its better attributes; its sturdy force, its courage and
constancy, its truth, its self-reliance, and all that gives the emphasis to
manly character.</p>
<p>Here was a fine prospect in the distance. Not that the Surveyor brought the
lesson home to himself, or admitted that he could be so utterly undone, either
by continuance in office or ejectment. Yet my reflections were not the most
comfortable. I began to grow melancholy and restless; continually prying into
my mind, to discover which of its poor properties were gone, and what degree of
detriment had already accrued to the remainder. I endeavoured to calculate how
much longer I could stay in the Custom-House, and yet go forth a man. To
confess the truth, it was my greatest apprehension—as it would never be a
measure of policy to turn out so quiet an individual as myself; and it being
hardly in the nature of a public officer to resign—it was my chief
trouble, therefore, that I was likely to grow grey and decrepit in the
Surveyorship, and become much such another animal as the old Inspector. Might
it not, in the tedious lapse of official life that lay before me, finally be
with me as it was with this venerable friend—to make the dinner-hour the
nucleus of the day, and to spend the rest of it, as an old dog spends it,
asleep in the sunshine or in the shade? A dreary look-forward, this, for a man
who felt it to be the best definition of happiness to live throughout the whole
range of his faculties and sensibilities. But, all this while, I was giving
myself very unnecessary alarm. Providence had meditated better things for me
than I could possibly imagine for myself.</p>
<p>A remarkable event of the third year of my Surveyorship—to adopt the tone
of “P. P.”—was the election of General Taylor to the
Presidency. It is essential, in order to form a complete estimate of the
advantages of official life, to view the incumbent at the incoming of a
hostile administration. His position is then one of the most singularly
irksome, and, in every contingency, disagreeable, that a wretched mortal can
possibly occupy; with seldom an alternative of good on either hand, although
what presents itself to him as the worst event may very probably be the best.
But it is a strange experience, to a man of pride and sensibility, to know that
his interests are within the control of individuals who neither love nor
understand him, and by whom, since one or the other must needs happen, he would
rather be injured than obliged. Strange, too, for one who has kept his calmness
throughout the contest, to observe the bloodthirstiness that is developed in
the hour of triumph, and to be conscious that he is himself among its objects!
There are few uglier traits of human nature than this tendency—which I
now witnessed in men no worse than their neighbours—to grow cruel, merely
because they possessed the power of inflicting harm. If the guillotine, as
applied to office-holders, were a literal fact, instead of one of the most apt
of metaphors, it is my sincere belief that the active members of the victorious
party were sufficiently excited to have chopped off all our heads, and have
thanked Heaven for the opportunity! It appears to me—who have been a calm
and curious observer, as well in victory as defeat—that this fierce and
bitter spirit of malice and revenge has never distinguished the many triumphs
of my own party as it now did that of the Whigs. The Democrats take the
offices, as a general rule, because they need them, and because the practice of
many years has made it the law of political warfare, which unless a different
system be proclaimed, it was weakness and cowardice to murmur at. But the long
habit of victory has made them generous. They know how to spare when they see
occasion; and when they strike, the axe may be sharp indeed, but its edge is
seldom poisoned with ill-will; nor is it their custom ignominiously to kick the
head which they have just struck off.</p>
<p>In short, unpleasant as was my predicament, at best, I saw much reason to
congratulate myself that I was on the losing side rather than the triumphant
one. If, heretofore, I had been none of the warmest of partisans I began now,
at this season of peril and adversity, to be pretty acutely sensible with which
party my predilections lay; nor was it without something like regret and shame
that, according to a reasonable calculation of chances, I saw my own prospect
of retaining office to be better than those of my democratic brethren. But who
can see an inch into futurity beyond his nose? My own head was the first that
fell.</p>
<p>The moment when a man’s head drops off is seldom or never, I am inclined
to think, precisely the most agreeable of his life. Nevertheless, like the
greater part of our misfortunes, even so serious a contingency brings its
remedy and consolation with it, if the sufferer will but make the best rather
than the worst, of the accident which has befallen him. In my particular case
the consolatory topics were close at hand, and, indeed, had suggested
themselves to my meditations a considerable time before it was requisite to use
them. In view of my previous weariness of office, and vague thoughts of
resignation, my fortune somewhat resembled that of a person who should
entertain an idea of committing suicide, and although beyond his hopes, meet
with the good hap to be murdered. In the Custom-House, as before in the Old
Manse, I had spent three years—a term long enough to rest a weary brain:
long enough to break off old intellectual habits, and make room for new ones:
long enough, and too long, to have lived in an unnatural state, doing what was
really of no advantage nor delight to any human being, and withholding myself
from toil that would, at least, have stilled an unquiet impulse in me. Then,
moreover, as regarded his unceremonious ejectment, the late Surveyor was not
altogether ill-pleased to be recognised by the Whigs as an enemy; since his
inactivity in political affairs—his tendency to roam, at will, in that
broad and quiet field where all mankind may meet, rather than confine himself
to those narrow paths where brethren of the same household must diverge from
one another—had sometimes made it questionable with his brother Democrats
whether he was a friend. Now, after he had won the crown of martyrdom (though
with no longer a head to wear it on), the point might be looked upon as
settled. Finally, little heroic as he was, it seemed more decorous to be
overthrown in the downfall of the party with which he had been content to stand
than to remain a forlorn survivor, when so many worthier men were falling: and
at last, after subsisting for four years on the mercy of a hostile
administration, to be compelled then to define his position anew, and claim the
yet more humiliating mercy of a friendly one.</p>
<p>Meanwhile, the press had taken up my affair, and kept me for a week or two
careering through the public prints, in my decapitated state, like
Irving’s Headless Horseman, ghastly and grim, and longing to be buried,
as a political dead man ought. So much for my figurative self. The real human
being all this time, with his head safely on his shoulders, had brought himself
to the comfortable conclusion that everything was for the best; and making an
investment in ink, paper, and steel pens, had opened his long-disused writing
desk, and was again a literary man.</p>
<p>Now it was that the lucubrations of my ancient predecessor, Mr. Surveyor Pue,
came into play. Rusty through long idleness, some little space was requisite
before my intellectual machinery could be brought to work upon the tale with an
effect in any degree satisfactory. Even yet, though my thoughts were ultimately
much absorbed in the task, it wears, to my eye, a stern and sombre aspect: too
much ungladdened by genial sunshine; too little relieved by the tender and
familiar influences which soften almost every scene of nature and real life,
and undoubtedly should soften every picture of them. This uncaptivating effect
is perhaps due to the period of hardly accomplished revolution, and still
seething turmoil, in which the story shaped itself. It is no indication,
however, of a lack of cheerfulness in the writer’s mind: for he was
happier while straying through the gloom of these sunless fantasies than at any
time since he had quitted the Old Manse. Some of the briefer articles, which
contribute to make up the volume, have likewise been written since my
involuntary withdrawal from the toils and honours of public life, and the
remainder are gleaned from annuals and magazines, of such antique date, that
they have gone round the circle, and come back to novelty again. Keeping up the
metaphor of the political guillotine, the whole may be considered as the
P<small>OSTHUMOUS</small> P<small>APERS OF A</small> D<small>ECAPITATED</small>
S<small>URVEYOR</small>: and the sketch which I am now bringing to a close, if
too autobiographical for a modest person to publish in his lifetime, will
readily be excused in a gentleman who writes from beyond the grave. Peace be
with all the world! My blessing on my friends! My forgiveness to my enemies!
For I am in the realm of quiet!</p>
<p>The life of the Custom-House lies like a dream behind me. The old
Inspector—who, by the by, I regret to say, was overthrown and killed by
a horse some time ago, else he would certainly have lived for ever—he,
and all those other venerable personages who sat with him at the receipt of
custom, are but shadows in my view: white-headed and wrinkled images, which my
fancy used to sport with, and has now flung aside for ever. The
merchants—Pingree, Phillips, Shepard, Upton, Kimball, Bertram,
Hunt—these and many other names, which had such classic familiarity for
my ear six months ago,—these men of traffic, who seemed to occupy so
important a position in the world—how little time has it required to
disconnect me from them all, not merely in act, but recollection! It is with an
effort that I recall the figures and appellations of these few. Soon, likewise,
my old native town will loom upon me through the haze of memory, a mist
brooding over and around it; as if it were no portion of the real earth, but an
overgrown village in cloud-land, with only imaginary inhabitants to people its
wooden houses and walk its homely lanes, and the unpicturesque prolixity of its
main street. Henceforth it ceases to be a reality of my life; I am a citizen of
somewhere else. My good townspeople will not much regret me, for—though
it has been as dear an object as any, in my literary efforts, to be of some
importance in their eyes, and to win myself a pleasant memory in this abode and
burial-place of so many of my forefathers—there has never been, for me,
the genial atmosphere which a literary man requires in order to ripen the best
harvest of his mind. I shall do better amongst other faces; and these familiar
ones, it need hardly be said, will do just as well without me.</p>
<p>It may be, however—oh, transporting and triumphant thought—that the
great-grandchildren of the present race may sometimes think kindly of the
scribbler of bygone days, when the antiquary of days to come, among the sites
memorable in the town’s history, shall point out the locality of
T<small>HE</small> T<small>OWN</small> P<small>UMP</small>.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="pref02"></SPAN>THE SCARLET LETTER</h2>
<h2><SPAN name="chap01"></SPAN>I.<br/> THE PRISON DOOR</h2>
<p>A throng of bearded men, in sad-coloured garments and grey steeple-crowned
hats, intermixed with women, some wearing hoods, and others bareheaded, was
assembled in front of a wooden edifice, the door of which was heavily timbered
with oak, and studded with iron spikes.</p>
<p>The founders of a new colony, whatever Utopia of human virtue and happiness
they might originally project, have invariably recognised it among their
earliest practical necessities to allot a portion of the virgin soil as a
cemetery, and another portion as the site of a prison. In accordance with this
rule it may safely be assumed that the forefathers of Boston had built the
first prison-house somewhere in the vicinity of Cornhill, almost as seasonably
as they marked out the first burial-ground, on Isaac Johnson’s lot, and
round about his grave, which subsequently became the nucleus of all the
congregated sepulchres in the old churchyard of King’s Chapel. Certain it
is that, some fifteen or twenty years after the settlement of the town, the
wooden jail was already marked with weather-stains and other indications of
age, which gave a yet darker aspect to its beetle-browed and gloomy front. The
rust on the ponderous iron-work of its oaken door looked more antique than
anything else in the New World. Like all that pertains to crime, it seemed
never to have known a youthful era. Before this ugly edifice, and between it
and the wheel-track of the street, was a grass-plot, much overgrown with
burdock, pig-weed, apple-pern, and such unsightly vegetation, which evidently
found something congenial in the soil that had so early borne the black flower
of civilised society, a prison. But on one side of the portal, and rooted
almost at the threshold, was a wild rose-bush, covered, in this month of June,
with its delicate gems, which might be imagined to offer their fragrance and
fragile beauty to the prisoner as he went in, and to the condemned criminal as
he came forth to his doom, in token that the deep heart of Nature could pity
and be kind to him.</p>
<p>This rose-bush, by a strange chance, has been kept alive in history; but
whether it had merely survived out of the stern old wilderness, so long after
the fall of the gigantic pines and oaks that originally overshadowed it, or
whether, as there is fair authority for believing, it had sprung up under the
footsteps of the sainted Ann Hutchinson as she entered the prison-door, we
shall not take upon us to determine. Finding it so directly on the threshold of
our narrative, which is now about to issue from that inauspicious portal, we
could hardly do otherwise than pluck one of its flowers, and present it to the
reader. It may serve, let us hope, to symbolise some sweet moral blossom that
may be found along the track, or relieve the darkening close of a tale of human
frailty and sorrow.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap02"></SPAN>II.<br/> THE MARKET-PLACE</h2>
<p>The grass-plot before the jail, in Prison Lane, on a certain summer morning,
not less than two centuries ago, was occupied by a pretty large number of the
inhabitants of Boston, all with their eyes intently fastened on the
iron-clamped oaken door. Amongst any other population, or at a later period in
the history of New England, the grim rigidity that petrified the bearded
physiognomies of these good people would have augured some awful business in
hand. It could have betokened nothing short of the anticipated execution of
some noted culprit, on whom the sentence of a legal tribunal had but confirmed
the verdict of public sentiment. But, in that early severity of the Puritan
character, an inference of this kind could not so indubitably be drawn. It
might be that a sluggish bond-servant, or an undutiful child, whom his parents
had given over to the civil authority, was to be corrected at the
whipping-post. It might be that an Antinomian, a Quaker, or other heterodox
religionist, was to be scourged out of the town, or an idle or vagrant Indian,
whom the white man’s firewater had made riotous about the streets, was to
be driven with stripes into the shadow of the forest. It might be, too, that a
witch, like old Mistress Hibbins, the bitter-tempered widow of the magistrate,
was to die upon the gallows. In either case, there was very much the same
solemnity of demeanour on the part of the spectators, as befitted a people
among whom religion and law were almost identical, and in whose character both
were so thoroughly interfused, that the mildest and severest acts of public
discipline were alike made venerable and awful. Meagre, indeed, and cold, was
the sympathy that a transgressor might look for, from such bystanders, at the
scaffold. On the other hand, a penalty which, in our days, would infer a degree
of mocking infamy and ridicule, might then be invested with almost as stern a
dignity as the punishment of death itself.</p>
<p>It was a circumstance to be noted on the summer morning when our story begins
its course, that the women, of whom there were several in the crowd, appeared
to take a peculiar interest in whatever penal infliction might be expected to
ensue. The age had not so much refinement, that any sense of impropriety
restrained the wearers of petticoat and farthingale from stepping forth into
the public ways, and wedging their not unsubstantial persons, if occasion were,
into the throng nearest to the scaffold at an execution. Morally, as well as
materially, there was a coarser fibre in those wives and maidens of old English
birth and breeding than in their fair descendants, separated from them by a
series of six or seven generations; for, throughout that chain of ancestry,
every successive mother had transmitted to her child a fainter bloom, a more
delicate and briefer beauty, and a slighter physical frame, if not character of
less force and solidity than her own. The women who were now standing about the
prison-door stood within less than half a century of the period when the
man-like Elizabeth had been the not altogether unsuitable representative of the
sex. They were her countrywomen: and the beef and ale of their native land,
with a moral diet not a whit more refined, entered largely into their
composition. The bright morning sun, therefore, shone on broad shoulders and
well-developed busts, and on round and ruddy cheeks, that had ripened in the
far-off island, and had hardly yet grown paler or thinner in the atmosphere of
New England. There was, moreover, a boldness and rotundity of speech among
these matrons, as most of them seemed to be, that would startle us at the
present day, whether in respect to its purport or its volume of tone.</p>
<p>“Goodwives,” said a hard-featured dame of fifty, “I’ll
tell ye a piece of my mind. It would be greatly for the public behoof if we
women, being of mature age and church-members in good repute, should have the
handling of such malefactresses as this Hester Prynne. What think ye, gossips?
If the hussy stood up for judgment before us five, that are now here in a knot
together, would she come off with such a sentence as the worshipful magistrates
have awarded? Marry, I trow not.”</p>
<p>“People say,” said another, “that the Reverend Master
Dimmesdale, her godly pastor, takes it very grievously to heart that such a
scandal should have come upon his congregation.”</p>
<p>“The magistrates are God-fearing gentlemen, but merciful
overmuch—that is a truth,” added a third autumnal matron. “At
the very least, they should have put the brand of a hot iron on Hester
Prynne’s forehead. Madame Hester would have winced at that, I warrant me.
But she—the naughty baggage—little will she care what they put upon
the bodice of her gown! Why, look you, she may cover it with a brooch, or such
like heathenish adornment, and so walk the streets as brave as ever!”</p>
<p>“Ah, but,” interposed, more softly, a young wife, holding a child
by the hand, “let her cover the mark as she will, the pang of it will be
always in her heart.”</p>
<p>“What do we talk of marks and brands, whether on the bodice of her gown
or the flesh of her forehead?” cried another female, the ugliest as well
as the most pitiless of these self-constituted judges. “This woman has
brought shame upon us all, and ought to die; is there not law for it? Truly
there is, both in the Scripture and the statute-book. Then let the magistrates,
who have made it of no effect, thank themselves if their own wives and
daughters go astray.”</p>
<p>“Mercy on us, goodwife!” exclaimed a man in the crowd, “is
there no virtue in woman, save what springs from a wholesome fear of the
gallows? That is the hardest word yet! Hush now, gossips for the lock is
turning in the prison-door, and here comes Mistress Prynne herself.”</p>
<p>The door of the jail being flung open from within there appeared, in the first
place, like a black shadow emerging into sunshine, the grim and grisly presence
of the town-beadle, with a sword by his side, and his staff of office in his
hand. This personage prefigured and represented in his aspect the whole dismal
severity of the Puritanic code of law, which it was his business to administer
in its final and closest application to the offender. Stretching forth the
official staff in his left hand, he laid his right upon the shoulder of a young
woman, whom he thus drew forward, until, on the threshold of the prison-door,
she repelled him, by an action marked with natural dignity and force of
character, and stepped into the open air as if by her own free will. She bore
in her arms a child, a baby of some three months old, who winked and turned
aside its little face from the too vivid light of day; because its existence,
heretofore, had brought it acquaintance only with the grey twilight of a
dungeon, or other darksome apartment of the prison.</p>
<p>When the young woman—the mother of this child—stood fully revealed
before the crowd, it seemed to be her first impulse to clasp the infant closely
to her bosom; not so much by an impulse of motherly affection, as that she
might thereby conceal a certain token, which was wrought or fastened into her
dress. In a moment, however, wisely judging that one token of her shame would
but poorly serve to hide another, she took the baby on her arm, and with a
burning blush, and yet a haughty smile, and a glance that would not be abashed,
looked around at her townspeople and neighbours. On the breast of her gown, in
fine red cloth, surrounded with an elaborate embroidery and fantastic
flourishes of gold thread, appeared the letter A. It was so artistically done,
and with so much fertility and gorgeous luxuriance of fancy, that it had all
the effect of a last and fitting decoration to the apparel which she wore, and
which was of a splendour in accordance with the taste of the age, but greatly
beyond what was allowed by the sumptuary regulations of the colony.</p>
<p>The young woman was tall, with a figure of perfect elegance on a large scale.
She had dark and abundant hair, so glossy that it threw off the sunshine with a
gleam; and a face which, besides being beautiful from regularity of feature and
richness of complexion, had the impressiveness belonging to a marked brow and
deep black eyes. She was ladylike, too, after the manner of the feminine
gentility of those days; characterised by a certain state and dignity, rather
than by the delicate, evanescent, and indescribable grace which is now
recognised as its indication. And never had Hester Prynne appeared more
ladylike, in the antique interpretation of the term, than as she issued from
the prison. Those who had before known her, and had expected to behold her
dimmed and obscured by a disastrous cloud, were astonished, and even startled,
to perceive how her beauty shone out, and made a halo of the misfortune and
ignominy in which she was enveloped. It may be true that, to a sensitive
observer, there was some thing exquisitely painful in it. Her attire, which
indeed, she had wrought for the occasion in prison, and had modelled much after
her own fancy, seemed to express the attitude of her spirit, the desperate
recklessness of her mood, by its wild and picturesque peculiarity. But the
point which drew all eyes, and, as it were, transfigured the wearer—so
that both men and women who had been familiarly acquainted with Hester Prynne
were now impressed as if they beheld her for the first time—was that
S<small>CARLET</small> L<small>ETTER</small>, so fantastically embroidered and
illuminated upon her bosom. It had the effect of a spell, taking her out of the
ordinary relations with humanity, and enclosing her in a sphere by herself.</p>
<p>“She hath good skill at her needle, that’s certain,” remarked
one of her female spectators; “but did ever a woman, before this brazen
hussy, contrive such a way of showing it? Why, gossips, what is it but to laugh
in the faces of our godly magistrates, and make a pride out of what they,
worthy gentlemen, meant for a punishment?”</p>
<p>“It were well,” muttered the most iron-visaged of the old dames,
“if we stripped Madame Hester’s rich gown off her dainty shoulders;
and as for the red letter which she hath stitched so curiously, I’ll
bestow a rag of mine own rheumatic flannel to make a fitter one!”</p>
<p>“Oh, peace, neighbours—peace!” whispered their youngest
companion; “do not let her hear you! Not a stitch in that embroidered
letter but she has felt it in her heart.”</p>
<p>The grim beadle now made a gesture with his staff. “Make way, good
people—make way, in the King’s name!” cried he. “Open a
passage; and I promise ye, Mistress Prynne shall be set where man, woman, and
child may have a fair sight of her brave apparel from this time till an hour
past meridian. A blessing on the righteous colony of the Massachusetts, where
iniquity is dragged out into the sunshine! Come along, Madame Hester, and show
your scarlet letter in the market-place!”</p>
<p>A lane was forthwith opened through the crowd of spectators. Preceded by the
beadle, and attended by an irregular procession of stern-browed men and
unkindly visaged women, Hester Prynne set forth towards the place appointed for
her punishment. A crowd of eager and curious schoolboys, understanding little
of the matter in hand, except that it gave them a half-holiday, ran before her
progress, turning their heads continually to stare into her face and at the
winking baby in her arms, and at the ignominious letter on her breast. It was
no great distance, in those days, from the prison door to the market-place.
Measured by the prisoner’s experience, however, it might be reckoned a
journey of some length; for haughty as her demeanour was, she perchance
underwent an agony from every footstep of those that thronged to see her, as if
her heart had been flung into the street for them all to spurn and trample
upon. In our nature, however, there is a provision, alike marvellous and
merciful, that the sufferer should never know the intensity of what he endures
by its present torture, but chiefly by the pang that rankles after it. With
almost a serene deportment, therefore, Hester Prynne passed through this
portion of her ordeal, and came to a sort of scaffold, at the western extremity
of the market-place. It stood nearly beneath the eaves of Boston’s
earliest church, and appeared to be a fixture there.</p>
<p>In fact, this scaffold constituted a portion of a penal machine, which now, for
two or three generations past, has been merely historical and traditionary
among us, but was held, in the old time, to be as effectual an agent, in the
promotion of good citizenship, as ever was the guillotine among the terrorists
of France. It was, in short, the platform of the pillory; and above it rose the
framework of that instrument of discipline, so fashioned as to confine the
human head in its tight grasp, and thus hold it up to the public gaze. The very
ideal of ignominy was embodied and made manifest in this contrivance of wood
and iron. There can be no outrage, methinks, against our common
nature—whatever be the delinquencies of the individual—no outrage
more flagrant than to forbid the culprit to hide his face for shame; as it was
the essence of this punishment to do. In Hester Prynne’s instance,
however, as not unfrequently in other cases, her sentence bore that she should
stand a certain time upon the platform, but without undergoing that gripe about
the neck and confinement of the head, the proneness to which was the most
devilish characteristic of this ugly engine. Knowing well her part, she
ascended a flight of wooden steps, and was thus displayed to the surrounding
multitude, at about the height of a man’s shoulders above the street.</p>
<p>Had there been a Papist among the crowd of Puritans, he might have seen in this
beautiful woman, so picturesque in her attire and mien, and with the infant at
her bosom, an object to remind him of the image of Divine Maternity, which so
many illustrious painters have vied with one another to represent; something
which should remind him, indeed, but only by contrast, of that sacred image of
sinless motherhood, whose infant was to redeem the world. Here, there was the
taint of deepest sin in the most sacred quality of human life, working such
effect, that the world was only the darker for this woman’s beauty, and
the more lost for the infant that she had borne.</p>
<p>The scene was not without a mixture of awe, such as must always invest the
spectacle of guilt and shame in a fellow-creature, before society shall have
grown corrupt enough to smile, instead of shuddering at it. The witnesses of
Hester Prynne’s disgrace had not yet passed beyond their simplicity. They
were stern enough to look upon her death, had that been the sentence, without a
murmur at its severity, but had none of the heartlessness of another social
state, which would find only a theme for jest in an exhibition like the
present. Even had there been a disposition to turn the matter into ridicule, it
must have been repressed and overpowered by the solemn presence of men no less
dignified than the governor, and several of his counsellors, a judge, a
general, and the ministers of the town, all of whom sat or stood in a balcony
of the meeting-house, looking down upon the platform. When such personages
could constitute a part of the spectacle, without risking the majesty, or
reverence of rank and office, it was safely to be inferred that the infliction
of a legal sentence would have an earnest and effectual meaning. Accordingly,
the crowd was sombre and grave. The unhappy culprit sustained herself as best a
woman might, under the heavy weight of a thousand unrelenting eyes, all
fastened upon her, and concentrated at her bosom. It was almost intolerable to
be borne. Of an impulsive and passionate nature, she had fortified herself to
encounter the stings and venomous stabs of public contumely, wreaking itself in
every variety of insult; but there was a quality so much more terrible in the
solemn mood of the popular mind, that she longed rather to behold all those
rigid countenances contorted with scornful merriment, and herself the object.
Had a roar of laughter burst from the multitude—each man, each woman,
each little shrill-voiced child, contributing their individual
parts—Hester Prynne might have repaid them all with a bitter and
disdainful smile. But, under the leaden infliction which it was her doom to
endure, she felt, at moments, as if she must needs shriek out with the full
power of her lungs, and cast herself from the scaffold down upon the ground, or
else go mad at once.</p>
<p>Yet there were intervals when the whole scene, in which she was the most
conspicuous object, seemed to vanish from her eyes, or, at least, glimmered
indistinctly before them, like a mass of imperfectly shaped and spectral
images. Her mind, and especially her memory, was preternaturally active, and
kept bringing up other scenes than this roughly hewn street of a little town,
on the edge of the western wilderness: other faces than were lowering upon her
from beneath the brims of those steeple-crowned hats. Reminiscences, the most
trifling and immaterial, passages of infancy and school-days, sports, childish
quarrels, and the little domestic traits of her maiden years, came swarming
back upon her, intermingled with recollections of whatever was gravest in her
subsequent life; one picture precisely as vivid as another; as if all were of
similar importance, or all alike a play. Possibly, it was an instinctive device
of her spirit to relieve itself by the exhibition of these phantasmagoric
forms, from the cruel weight and hardness of the reality.</p>
<p>Be that as it might, the scaffold of the pillory was a point of view that
revealed to Hester Prynne the entire track along which she had been treading,
since her happy infancy. Standing on that miserable eminence, she saw again her
native village, in Old England, and her paternal home: a decayed house of grey
stone, with a poverty-stricken aspect, but retaining a half obliterated shield
of arms over the portal, in token of antique gentility. She saw her
father’s face, with its bold brow, and reverend white beard that flowed
over the old-fashioned Elizabethan ruff; her mother’s, too, with the look
of heedful and anxious love which it always wore in her remembrance, and which,
even since her death, had so often laid the impediment of a gentle remonstrance
in her daughter’s pathway. She saw her own face, glowing with girlish
beauty, and illuminating all the interior of the dusky mirror in which she had
been wont to gaze at it. There she beheld another countenance, of a man well
stricken in years, a pale, thin, scholar-like visage, with eyes dim and bleared
by the lamp-light that had served them to pore over many ponderous books. Yet
those same bleared optics had a strange, penetrating power, when it was their
owner’s purpose to read the human soul. This figure of the study and the
cloister, as Hester Prynne’s womanly fancy failed not to recall, was
slightly deformed, with the left shoulder a trifle higher than the right. Next
rose before her in memory’s picture-gallery, the intricate and narrow
thoroughfares, the tall, grey houses, the huge cathedrals, and the public
edifices, ancient in date and quaint in architecture, of a continental city;
where new life had awaited her, still in connexion with the misshapen scholar:
a new life, but feeding itself on time-worn materials, like a tuft of green
moss on a crumbling wall. Lastly, in lieu of these shifting scenes, came back
the rude market-place of the Puritan settlement, with all the townspeople
assembled, and levelling their stern regards at Hester Prynne—yes, at
herself—who stood on the scaffold of the pillory, an infant on her arm,
and the letter A, in scarlet, fantastically embroidered with gold thread, upon
her bosom.</p>
<p>Could it be true? She clutched the child so fiercely to her breast that it sent
forth a cry; she turned her eyes downward at the scarlet letter, and even
touched it with her finger, to assure herself that the infant and the shame
were real. Yes these were her realities—all else had vanished!</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap03"></SPAN>III.<br/> THE RECOGNITION</h2>
<p>From this intense consciousness of being the object of severe and universal
observation, the wearer of the scarlet letter was at length relieved, by
discerning, on the outskirts of the crowd, a figure which irresistibly took
possession of her thoughts. An Indian in his native garb was standing there;
but the red men were not so infrequent visitors of the English settlements that
one of them would have attracted any notice from Hester Prynne at such a time;
much less would he have excluded all other objects and ideas from her mind. By
the Indian’s side, and evidently sustaining a companionship with him,
stood a white man, clad in a strange disarray of civilized and savage costume.</p>
<p>He was small in stature, with a furrowed visage, which as yet could hardly be
termed aged. There was a remarkable intelligence in his features, as of a
person who had so cultivated his mental part that it could not fail to mould
the physical to itself and become manifest by unmistakable tokens. Although, by
a seemingly careless arrangement of his heterogeneous garb, he had endeavoured
to conceal or abate the peculiarity, it was sufficiently evident to Hester
Prynne that one of this man’s shoulders rose higher than the other.
Again, at the first instant of perceiving that thin visage, and the slight
deformity of the figure, she pressed her infant to her bosom with so convulsive
a force that the poor babe uttered another cry of pain. But the mother did not
seem to hear it.</p>
<p>At his arrival in the market-place, and some time before she saw him, the
stranger had bent his eyes on Hester Prynne. It was carelessly at first, like a
man chiefly accustomed to look inward, and to whom external matters are of
little value and import, unless they bear relation to something within his
mind. Very soon, however, his look became keen and penetrative. A writhing
horror twisted itself across his features, like a snake gliding swiftly over
them, and making one little pause, with all its wreathed intervolutions in open
sight. His face darkened with some powerful emotion, which, nevertheless, he so
instantaneously controlled by an effort of his will, that, save at a single
moment, its expression might have passed for calmness. After a brief space, the
convulsion grew almost imperceptible, and finally subsided into the depths of
his nature. When he found the eyes of Hester Prynne fastened on his own, and
saw that she appeared to recognize him, he slowly and calmly raised his finger,
made a gesture with it in the air, and laid it on his lips.</p>
<p>Then touching the shoulder of a townsman who stood near to him, he addressed
him in a formal and courteous manner:</p>
<p>“I pray you, good Sir,” said he, “who is this
woman?—and wherefore is she here set up to public shame?”</p>
<p>“You must needs be a stranger in this region, friend,” answered the
townsman, looking curiously at the questioner and his savage companion,
“else you would surely have heard of Mistress Hester Prynne and her evil
doings. She hath raised a great scandal, I promise you, in godly Master
Dimmesdale’s church.”</p>
<p>“You say truly,” replied the other; “I am a stranger, and
have been a wanderer, sorely against my will. I have met with grievous mishaps
by sea and land, and have been long held in bonds among the heathen-folk to the
southward; and am now brought hither by this Indian to be redeemed out of my
captivity. Will it please you, therefore, to tell me of Hester
Prynne’s—have I her name rightly?—of this woman’s
offences, and what has brought her to yonder scaffold?”</p>
<p>“Truly, friend; and methinks it must gladden your heart, after your
troubles and sojourn in the wilderness,” said the townsman, “to
find yourself at length in a land where iniquity is searched out and punished
in the sight of rulers and people, as here in our godly New England. Yonder
woman, Sir, you must know, was the wife of a certain learned man, English by
birth, but who had long ago dwelt in Amsterdam, whence some good time agone he
was minded to cross over and cast in his lot with us of the Massachusetts. To
this purpose he sent his wife before him, remaining himself to look after some
necessary affairs. Marry, good Sir, in some two years, or less, that the woman
has been a dweller here in Boston, no tidings have come of this learned
gentleman, Master Prynne; and his young wife, look you, being left to her own
misguidance—”</p>
<p>“Ah!—aha!—I conceive you,” said the stranger with a
bitter smile. “So learned a man as you speak of should have learned this
too in his books. And who, by your favour, Sir, may be the father of yonder
babe—it is some three or four months old, I should judge—which
Mistress Prynne is holding in her arms?”</p>
<p>“Of a truth, friend, that matter remaineth a riddle; and the Daniel who
shall expound it is yet a-wanting,” answered the townsman. “Madame
Hester absolutely refuseth to speak, and the magistrates have laid their heads
together in vain. Peradventure the guilty one stands looking on at this sad
spectacle, unknown of man, and forgetting that God sees him.”</p>
<p>“The learned man,” observed the stranger with another smile,
“should come himself to look into the mystery.”</p>
<p>“It behoves him well if he be still in life,” responded the
townsman. “Now, good Sir, our Massachusetts magistracy, bethinking
themselves that this woman is youthful and fair, and doubtless was strongly
tempted to her fall, and that, moreover, as is most likely, her husband may be
at the bottom of the sea, they have not been bold to put in force the extremity
of our righteous law against her. The penalty thereof is death. But in their
great mercy and tenderness of heart they have doomed Mistress Prynne to stand
only a space of three hours on the platform of the pillory, and then and
thereafter, for the remainder of her natural life to wear a mark of shame upon
her bosom.”</p>
<p>“A wise sentence,” remarked the stranger, gravely, bowing his head.
“Thus she will be a living sermon against sin, until the ignominious
letter be engraved upon her tombstone. It irks me, nevertheless, that the
partner of her iniquity should not at least, stand on the scaffold by her side.
But he will be known—he will be known!—he will be known!”</p>
<p>He bowed courteously to the communicative townsman, and whispering a few words
to his Indian attendant, they both made their way through the crowd.</p>
<p>While this passed, Hester Prynne had been standing on her pedestal, still with
a fixed gaze towards the stranger—so fixed a gaze that, at moments of
intense absorption, all other objects in the visible world seemed to vanish,
leaving only him and her. Such an interview, perhaps, would have been more
terrible than even to meet him as she now did, with the hot mid-day sun burning
down upon her face, and lighting up its shame; with the scarlet token of infamy
on her breast; with the sin-born infant in her arms; with a whole people, drawn
forth as to a festival, staring at the features that should have been seen only
in the quiet gleam of the fireside, in the happy shadow of a home, or beneath a
matronly veil at church. Dreadful as it was, she was conscious of a shelter in
the presence of these thousand witnesses. It was better to stand thus, with so
many betwixt him and her, than to greet him face to face—they two alone.
She fled for refuge, as it were, to the public exposure, and dreaded the moment
when its protection should be withdrawn from her. Involved in these thoughts,
she scarcely heard a voice behind her until it had repeated her name more than
once, in a loud and solemn tone, audible to the whole multitude.</p>
<p>“Hearken unto me, Hester Prynne!” said the voice.</p>
<p>It has already been noticed that directly over the platform on which Hester
Prynne stood was a kind of balcony, or open gallery, appended to the
meeting-house. It was the place whence proclamations were wont to be made,
amidst an assemblage of the magistracy, with all the ceremonial that attended
such public observances in those days. Here, to witness the scene which we are
describing, sat Governor Bellingham himself with four sergeants about his
chair, bearing halberds, as a guard of honour. He wore a dark feather in his
hat, a border of embroidery on his cloak, and a black velvet tunic
beneath—a gentleman advanced in years, with a hard experience written in
his wrinkles. He was not ill-fitted to be the head and representative of a
community which owed its origin and progress, and its present state of
development, not to the impulses of youth, but to the stern and tempered
energies of manhood and the sombre sagacity of age; accomplishing so much,
precisely because it imagined and hoped so little. The other eminent characters
by whom the chief ruler was surrounded were distinguished by a dignity of mien,
belonging to a period when the forms of authority were felt to possess the
sacredness of Divine institutions. They were, doubtless, good men, just and
sage. But, out of the whole human family, it would not have been easy to select
the same number of wise and virtuous persons, who should be less capable of
sitting in judgment on an erring woman’s heart, and disentangling its
mesh of good and evil, than the sages of rigid aspect towards whom Hester
Prynne now turned her face. She seemed conscious, indeed, that whatever
sympathy she might expect lay in the larger and warmer heart of the multitude;
for, as she lifted her eyes towards the balcony, the unhappy woman grew pale,
and trembled.</p>
<p>The voice which had called her attention was that of the reverend and famous
John Wilson, the eldest clergyman of Boston, a great scholar, like most of his
contemporaries in the profession, and withal a man of kind and genial spirit.
This last attribute, however, had been less carefully developed than his
intellectual gifts, and was, in truth, rather a matter of shame than
self-congratulation with him. There he stood, with a border of grizzled locks
beneath his skull-cap, while his grey eyes, accustomed to the shaded light of
his study, were winking, like those of Hester’s infant, in the
unadulterated sunshine. He looked like the darkly engraved portraits which we
see prefixed to old volumes of sermons, and had no more right than one of those
portraits would have to step forth, as he now did, and meddle with a question
of human guilt, passion, and anguish.</p>
<p>“Hester Prynne,” said the clergyman, “I have striven with my
young brother here, under whose preaching of the Word you have been privileged
to sit”—here Mr. Wilson laid his hand on the shoulder of a pale
young man beside him—“I have sought, I say, to persuade this godly
youth, that he should deal with you, here in the face of Heaven, and before
these wise and upright rulers, and in hearing of all the people, as touching
the vileness and blackness of your sin. Knowing your natural temper better than
I, he could the better judge what arguments to use, whether of tenderness or
terror, such as might prevail over your hardness and obstinacy, insomuch that
you should no longer hide the name of him who tempted you to this grievous
fall. But he opposes to me—with a young man’s over-softness, albeit
wise beyond his years—that it were wronging the very nature of woman to
force her to lay open her heart’s secrets in such broad daylight, and in
presence of so great a multitude. Truly, as I sought to convince him, the shame
lay in the commission of the sin, and not in the showing of it forth. What say
you to it, once again, brother Dimmesdale? Must it be thou, or I, that shall
deal with this poor sinner’s soul?”</p>
<p>There was a murmur among the dignified and reverend occupants of the balcony;
and Governor Bellingham gave expression to its purport, speaking in an
authoritative voice, although tempered with respect towards the youthful
clergyman whom he addressed:</p>
<p>“Good Master Dimmesdale,” said he, “the responsibility of
this woman’s soul lies greatly with you. It behoves you; therefore, to
exhort her to repentance and to confession, as a proof and consequence
thereof.”</p>
<p>The directness of this appeal drew the eyes of the whole crowd upon the
Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale—young clergyman, who had come from one of the
great English universities, bringing all the learning of the age into our wild
forest land. His eloquence and religious fervour had already given the earnest
of high eminence in his profession. He was a person of very striking aspect,
with a white, lofty, and impending brow; large, brown, melancholy eyes, and a
mouth which, unless when he forcibly compressed it, was apt to be tremulous,
expressing both nervous sensibility and a vast power of self restraint.
Notwithstanding his high native gifts and scholar-like attainments, there was
an air about this young minister—an apprehensive, a startled, a
half-frightened look—as of a being who felt himself quite astray, and at
a loss in the pathway of human existence, and could only be at ease in some
seclusion of his own. Therefore, so far as his duties would permit, he trod in
the shadowy by-paths, and thus kept himself simple and childlike, coming forth,
when occasion was, with a freshness, and fragrance, and dewy purity of thought,
which, as many people said, affected them like the speech of an angel.</p>
<p>Such was the young man whom the Reverend Mr. Wilson and the Governor had
introduced so openly to the public notice, bidding him speak, in the hearing of
all men, to that mystery of a woman’s soul, so sacred even in its
pollution. The trying nature of his position drove the blood from his cheek,
and made his lips tremulous.</p>
<p>“Speak to the woman, my brother,” said Mr. Wilson. “It is of
moment to her soul, and, therefore, as the worshipful Governor says, momentous
to thine own, in whose charge hers is. Exhort her to confess the truth!”</p>
<p>The Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale bent his head, in silent prayer, as it seemed, and
then came forward.</p>
<p>“Hester Prynne,” said he, leaning over the balcony and looking down
steadfastly into her eyes, “thou hearest what this good man says, and
seest the accountability under which I labour. If thou feelest it to be for thy
soul’s peace, and that thy earthly punishment will thereby be made more
effectual to salvation, I charge thee to speak out the name of thy
fellow-sinner and fellow-sufferer! Be not silent from any mistaken pity and
tenderness for him; for, believe me, Hester, though he were to step down from a
high place, and stand there beside thee, on thy pedestal of shame, yet better
were it so than to hide a guilty heart through life. What can thy silence do
for him, except it tempt him—yea, compel him, as it were—to add
hypocrisy to sin? Heaven hath granted thee an open ignominy, that thereby thou
mayest work out an open triumph over the evil within thee and the sorrow
without. Take heed how thou deniest to him—who, perchance, hath not the
courage to grasp it for himself—the bitter, but wholesome, cup that is
now presented to thy lips!”</p>
<p>The young pastor’s voice was tremulously sweet, rich, deep, and broken.
The feeling that it so evidently manifested, rather than the direct purport of
the words, caused it to vibrate within all hearts, and brought the listeners
into one accord of sympathy. Even the poor baby at Hester’s bosom was
affected by the same influence, for it directed its hitherto vacant gaze
towards Mr. Dimmesdale, and held up its little arms with a half-pleased,
half-plaintive murmur. So powerful seemed the minister’s appeal that the
people could not believe but that Hester Prynne would speak out the guilty
name, or else that the guilty one himself in whatever high or lowly place he
stood, would be drawn forth by an inward and inevitable necessity, and
compelled to ascend the scaffold.</p>
<p>Hester shook her head.</p>
<p>“Woman, transgress not beyond the limits of Heaven’s mercy!”
cried the Reverend Mr. Wilson, more harshly than before. “That little
babe hath been gifted with a voice, to second and confirm the counsel which
thou hast heard. Speak out the name! That, and thy repentance, may avail to
take the scarlet letter off thy breast.”</p>
<p>“Never,” replied Hester Prynne, looking, not at Mr. Wilson, but
into the deep and troubled eyes of the younger clergyman. “It is too
deeply branded. Ye cannot take it off. And would that I might endure his agony
as well as mine!”</p>
<p>“Speak, woman!” said another voice, coldly and sternly, proceeding
from the crowd about the scaffold, “Speak; and give your child a
father!”</p>
<p>“I will not speak!” answered Hester, turning pale as death, but
responding to this voice, which she too surely recognised. “And my child
must seek a heavenly father; she shall never know an earthly one!”</p>
<p>“She will not speak!” murmured Mr. Dimmesdale, who, leaning over
the balcony, with his hand upon his heart, had awaited the result of his
appeal. He now drew back with a long respiration. “Wondrous strength and
generosity of a woman’s heart! She will not speak!”</p>
<p>Discerning the impracticable state of the poor culprit’s mind, the elder
clergyman, who had carefully prepared himself for the occasion, addressed to
the multitude a discourse on sin, in all its branches, but with continual
reference to the ignominious letter. So forcibly did he dwell upon this symbol,
for the hour or more during which his periods were rolling over the
people’s heads, that it assumed new terrors in their imagination, and
seemed to derive its scarlet hue from the flames of the infernal pit. Hester
Prynne, meanwhile, kept her place upon the pedestal of shame, with glazed eyes,
and an air of weary indifference. She had borne that morning all that nature
could endure; and as her temperament was not of the order that escapes from too
intense suffering by a swoon, her spirit could only shelter itself beneath a
stony crust of insensibility, while the faculties of animal life remained
entire. In this state, the voice of the preacher thundered remorselessly, but
unavailingly, upon her ears. The infant, during the latter portion of her
ordeal, pierced the air with its wailings and screams; she strove to hush it
mechanically, but seemed scarcely to sympathise with its trouble. With the same
hard demeanour, she was led back to prison, and vanished from the public gaze
within its iron-clamped portal. It was whispered by those who peered after her
that the scarlet letter threw a lurid gleam along the dark passage-way of the
interior.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap04"></SPAN>IV.<br/> THE INTERVIEW</h2>
<p>After her return to the prison, Hester Prynne was found to be in a state of
nervous excitement, that demanded constant watchfulness, lest she should
perpetrate violence on herself, or do some half-frenzied mischief to the poor
babe. As night approached, it proving impossible to quell her insubordination
by rebuke or threats of punishment, Master Brackett, the jailer, thought fit to
introduce a physician. He described him as a man of skill in all Christian
modes of physical science, and likewise familiar with whatever the savage
people could teach in respect to medicinal herbs and roots that grew in the
forest. To say the truth, there was much need of professional assistance, not
merely for Hester herself, but still more urgently for the child—who,
drawing its sustenance from the maternal bosom, seemed to have drank in with it
all the turmoil, the anguish and despair, which pervaded the mother’s
system. It now writhed in convulsions of pain, and was a forcible type, in its
little frame, of the moral agony which Hester Prynne had borne throughout the
day.</p>
<p>Closely following the jailer into the dismal apartment, appeared that
individual, of singular aspect whose presence in the crowd had been of such
deep interest to the wearer of the scarlet letter. He was lodged in the prison,
not as suspected of any offence, but as the most convenient and suitable mode
of disposing of him, until the magistrates should have conferred with the
Indian sagamores respecting his ransom. His name was announced as Roger
Chillingworth. The jailer, after ushering him into the room, remained a moment,
marvelling at the comparative quiet that followed his entrance; for Hester
Prynne had immediately become as still as death, although the child continued
to moan.</p>
<p>“Prithee, friend, leave me alone with my patient,” said the
practitioner. “Trust me, good jailer, you shall briefly have peace in
your house; and, I promise you, Mistress Prynne shall hereafter be more
amenable to just authority than you may have found her heretofore.”</p>
<p>“Nay, if your worship can accomplish that,” answered Master
Brackett, “I shall own you for a man of skill, indeed! Verily, the woman
hath been like a possessed one; and there lacks little that I should take in
hand, to drive Satan out of her with stripes.”</p>
<p>The stranger had entered the room with the characteristic quietude of the
profession to which he announced himself as belonging. Nor did his demeanour
change when the withdrawal of the prison keeper left him face to face with the
woman, whose absorbed notice of him, in the crowd, had intimated so close a
relation between himself and her. His first care was given to the child, whose
cries, indeed, as she lay writhing on the trundle-bed, made it of peremptory
necessity to postpone all other business to the task of soothing her. He
examined the infant carefully, and then proceeded to unclasp a leathern case,
which he took from beneath his dress. It appeared to contain medical
preparations, one of which he mingled with a cup of water.</p>
<p>“My old studies in alchemy,” observed he, “and my sojourn,
for above a year past, among a people well versed in the kindly properties of
simples, have made a better physician of me than many that claim the medical
degree. Here, woman! The child is yours—she is none of mine—neither
will she recognise my voice or aspect as a father’s. Administer this
draught, therefore, with thine own hand.”</p>
<p>Hester repelled the offered medicine, at the same time gazing with strongly
marked apprehension into his face. “Wouldst thou avenge thyself on the
innocent babe?” whispered she.</p>
<p>“Foolish woman!” responded the physician, half coldly, half
soothingly. “What should ail me to harm this misbegotten and miserable
babe? The medicine is potent for good, and were it my child—yea, mine
own, as well as thine! I could do no better for it.”</p>
<p>As she still hesitated, being, in fact, in no reasonable state of mind, he took
the infant in his arms, and himself administered the draught. It soon proved
its efficacy, and redeemed the leech’s pledge. The moans of the little
patient subsided; its convulsive tossings gradually ceased; and in a few
moments, as is the custom of young children after relief from pain, it sank
into a profound and dewy slumber. The physician, as he had a fair right to be
termed, next bestowed his attention on the mother. With calm and intent
scrutiny, he felt her pulse, looked into her eyes—a gaze that made her
heart shrink and shudder, because so familiar, and yet so strange and
cold—and, finally, satisfied with his investigation, proceeded to mingle
another draught.</p>
<p>“I know not Lethe nor Nepenthe,” remarked he; “but I have
learned many new secrets in the wilderness, and here is one of them—a
recipe that an Indian taught me, in requital of some lessons of my own, that
were as old as Paracelsus. Drink it! It may be less soothing than a sinless
conscience. That I cannot give thee. But it will calm the swell and heaving of
thy passion, like oil thrown on the waves of a tempestuous sea.”</p>
<p>He presented the cup to Hester, who received it with a slow, earnest look into
his face; not precisely a look of fear, yet full of doubt and questioning as to
what his purposes might be. She looked also at her slumbering child.</p>
<p>“I have thought of death,” said she—“have wished for
it—would even have prayed for it, were it fit that such as I should pray
for anything. Yet, if death be in this cup, I bid thee think again, ere thou
beholdest me quaff it. See! it is even now at my lips.”</p>
<p>“Drink, then,” replied he, still with the same cold composure.
“Dost thou know me so little, Hester Prynne? Are my purposes wont to be
so shallow? Even if I imagine a scheme of vengeance, what could I do better for
my object than to let thee live—than to give thee medicines against all
harm and peril of life—so that this burning shame may still blaze upon
thy bosom?” As he spoke, he laid his long forefinger on the scarlet
letter, which forthwith seemed to scorch into Hester’s breast, as if it
had been red hot. He noticed her involuntary gesture, and smiled. “Live,
therefore, and bear about thy doom with thee, in the eyes of men and
women—in the eyes of him whom thou didst call thy husband—in the
eyes of yonder child! And, that thou mayest live, take off this draught.”</p>
<p>Without further expostulation or delay, Hester Prynne drained the cup, and, at
the motion of the man of skill, seated herself on the bed, where the child was
sleeping; while he drew the only chair which the room afforded, and took his
own seat beside her. She could not but tremble at these preparations; for she
felt that—having now done all that humanity, or principle, or, if so it
were, a refined cruelty, impelled him to do for the relief of physical
suffering—he was next to treat with her as the man whom she had most
deeply and irreparably injured.</p>
<p>“Hester,” said he, “I ask not wherefore, nor how thou hast
fallen into the pit, or say, rather, thou hast ascended to the pedestal of
infamy on which I found thee. The reason is not far to seek. It was my folly,
and thy weakness. I—a man of thought—the book-worm of great
libraries—a man already in decay, having given my best years to feed the
hungry dream of knowledge—what had I to do with youth and beauty like
thine own? Misshapen from my birth-hour, how could I delude myself with the
idea that intellectual gifts might veil physical deformity in a young
girl’s fantasy? Men call me wise. If sages were ever wise in their own
behoof, I might have foreseen all this. I might have known that, as I came out
of the vast and dismal forest, and entered this settlement of Christian men,
the very first object to meet my eyes would be thyself, Hester Prynne, standing
up, a statue of ignominy, before the people. Nay, from the moment when we came
down the old church-steps together, a married pair, I might have beheld the
bale-fire of that scarlet letter blazing at the end of our path!”</p>
<p>“Thou knowest,” said Hester—for, depressed as she was, she
could not endure this last quiet stab at the token of her
shame—“thou knowest that I was frank with thee. I felt no love, nor
feigned any.”</p>
<p>“True,” replied he. “It was my folly! I have said it. But, up
to that epoch of my life, I had lived in vain. The world had been so cheerless!
My heart was a habitation large enough for many guests, but lonely and chill,
and without a household fire. I longed to kindle one! It seemed not so wild a
dream—old as I was, and sombre as I was, and misshapen as I
was—that the simple bliss, which is scattered far and wide, for all
mankind to gather up, might yet be mine. And so, Hester, I drew thee into my
heart, into its innermost chamber, and sought to warm thee by the warmth which
thy presence made there!”</p>
<p>“I have greatly wronged thee,” murmured Hester.</p>
<p>“We have wronged each other,” answered he. “Mine was the
first wrong, when I betrayed thy budding youth into a false and unnatural
relation with my decay. Therefore, as a man who has not thought and
philosophised in vain, I seek no vengeance, plot no evil against thee. Between
thee and me, the scale hangs fairly balanced. But, Hester, the man lives who
has wronged us both! Who is he?”</p>
<p>“Ask me not!” replied Hester Prynne, looking firmly into his face.
“That thou shalt never know!”</p>
<p>“Never, sayest thou?” rejoined he, with a smile of dark and
self-relying intelligence. “Never know him! Believe me, Hester, there are
few things whether in the outward world, or, to a certain depth, in the
invisible sphere of thought—few things hidden from the man who devotes
himself earnestly and unreservedly to the solution of a mystery. Thou mayest
cover up thy secret from the prying multitude. Thou mayest conceal it, too,
from the ministers and magistrates, even as thou didst this day, when they
sought to wrench the name out of thy heart, and give thee a partner on thy
pedestal. But, as for me, I come to the inquest with other senses than they
possess. I shall seek this man, as I have sought truth in books: as I have
sought gold in alchemy. There is a sympathy that will make me conscious of him.
I shall see him tremble. I shall feel myself shudder, suddenly and unawares.
Sooner or later, he must needs be mine.”</p>
<p>The eyes of the wrinkled scholar glowed so intensely upon her, that Hester
Prynne clasped her hand over her heart, dreading lest he should read the secret
there at once.</p>
<p>“Thou wilt not reveal his name? Not the less he is mine,” resumed
he, with a look of confidence, as if destiny were at one with him. “He
bears no letter of infamy wrought into his garment, as thou dost, but I shall
read it on his heart. Yet fear not for him! Think not that I shall interfere
with Heaven’s own method of retribution, or, to my own loss, betray him
to the gripe of human law. Neither do thou imagine that I shall contrive aught
against his life; no, nor against his fame, if as I judge, he be a man of fair
repute. Let him live! Let him hide himself in outward honour, if he may! Not
the less he shall be mine!”</p>
<p>“Thy acts are like mercy,” said Hester, bewildered and appalled;
“but thy words interpret thee as a terror!”</p>
<p>“One thing, thou that wast my wife, I would enjoin upon thee,”
continued the scholar. “Thou hast kept the secret of thy paramour. Keep,
likewise, mine! There are none in this land that know me. Breathe not to any
human soul that thou didst ever call me husband! Here, on this wild outskirt of
the earth, I shall pitch my tent; for, elsewhere a wanderer, and isolated from
human interests, I find here a woman, a man, a child, amongst whom and myself
there exist the closest ligaments. No matter whether of love or hate: no matter
whether of right or wrong! Thou and thine, Hester Prynne, belong to me. My home
is where thou art and where he is. But betray me not!”</p>
<p>“Wherefore dost thou desire it?” inquired Hester, shrinking, she
hardly knew why, from this secret bond. “Why not announce thyself openly,
and cast me off at once?”</p>
<p>“It may be,” he replied, “because I will not encounter the
dishonour that besmirches the husband of a faithless woman. It may be for other
reasons. Enough, it is my purpose to live and die unknown. Let, therefore, thy
husband be to the world as one already dead, and of whom no tidings shall ever
come. Recognise me not, by word, by sign, by look! Breathe not the secret,
above all, to the man thou wottest of. Shouldst thou fail me in this, beware!
His fame, his position, his life will be in my hands. Beware!”</p>
<p>“I will keep thy secret, as I have his,” said Hester.</p>
<p>“Swear it!” rejoined he.</p>
<p>And she took the oath.</p>
<p>“And now, Mistress Prynne,” said old Roger Chillingworth, as he was
hereafter to be named, “I leave thee alone: alone with thy infant and the
scarlet letter! How is it, Hester? Doth thy sentence bind thee to wear the
token in thy sleep? Art thou not afraid of nightmares and hideous
dreams?”</p>
<p>“Why dost thou smile so at me?” inquired Hester, troubled at the
expression of his eyes. “Art thou like the Black Man that haunts the
forest round about us? Hast thou enticed me into a bond that will prove the
ruin of my soul?”</p>
<p>“Not thy soul,” he answered, with another smile. “No, not
thine!”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap05"></SPAN>V.<br/> HESTER AT HER NEEDLE</h2>
<p>Hester Prynne’s term of confinement was now at an end. Her prison-door
was thrown open, and she came forth into the sunshine, which, falling on all
alike, seemed, to her sick and morbid heart, as if meant for no other purpose
than to reveal the scarlet letter on her breast. Perhaps there was a more real
torture in her first unattended footsteps from the threshold of the prison than
even in the procession and spectacle that have been described, where she was
made the common infamy, at which all mankind was summoned to point its finger.
Then, she was supported by an unnatural tension of the nerves, and by all the
combative energy of her character, which enabled her to convert the scene into
a kind of lurid triumph. It was, moreover, a separate and insulated event, to
occur but once in her lifetime, and to meet which, therefore, reckless of
economy, she might call up the vital strength that would have sufficed for many
quiet years. The very law that condemned her—a giant of stern features
but with vigour to support, as well as to annihilate, in his iron arm—had
held her up through the terrible ordeal of her ignominy. But now, with this
unattended walk from her prison door, began the daily custom; and she must
either sustain and carry it forward by the ordinary resources of her nature, or
sink beneath it. She could no longer borrow from the future to help her through
the present grief. Tomorrow would bring its own trial with it; so would the
next day, and so would the next: each its own trial, and yet the very same that
was now so unutterably grievous to be borne. The days of the far-off future
would toil onward, still with the same burden for her to take up, and bear
along with her, but never to fling down; for the accumulating days and added
years would pile up their misery upon the heap of shame. Throughout them all,
giving up her individuality, she would become the general symbol at which the
preacher and moralist might point, and in which they might vivify and embody
their images of woman’s frailty and sinful passion. Thus the young and
pure would be taught to look at her, with the scarlet letter flaming on her
breast—at her, the child of honourable parents—at her, the mother
of a babe that would hereafter be a woman—at her, who had once been
innocent—as the figure, the body, the reality of sin. And over her grave,
the infamy that she must carry thither would be her only monument.</p>
<p>It may seem marvellous that, with the world before her—kept by no
restrictive clause of her condemnation within the limits of the Puritan
settlement, so remote and so obscure—free to return to her birth-place,
or to any other European land, and there hide her character and identity under
a new exterior, as completely as if emerging into another state of
being—and having also the passes of the dark, inscrutable forest open to
her, where the wildness of her nature might assimilate itself with a people
whose customs and life were alien from the law that had condemned her—it
may seem marvellous that this woman should still call that place her home,
where, and where only, she must needs be the type of shame. But there is a
fatality, a feeling so irresistible and inevitable that it has the force of
doom, which almost invariably compels human beings to linger around and haunt,
ghost-like, the spot where some great and marked event has given the colour to
their lifetime; and, still the more irresistibly, the darker the tinge that
saddens it. Her sin, her ignominy, were the roots which she had struck into the
soil. It was as if a new birth, with stronger assimilations than the first, had
converted the forest-land, still so uncongenial to every other pilgrim and
wanderer, into Hester Prynne’s wild and dreary, but life-long home. All
other scenes of earth—even that village of rural England, where happy
infancy and stainless maidenhood seemed yet to be in her mother’s
keeping, like garments put off long ago—were foreign to her, in
comparison. The chain that bound her here was of iron links, and galling to her
inmost soul, but could never be broken.</p>
<p>It might be, too—doubtless it was so, although she hid the secret from
herself, and grew pale whenever it struggled out of her heart, like a serpent
from its hole—it might be that another feeling kept her within the scene
and pathway that had been so fatal. There dwelt, there trode, the feet of one
with whom she deemed herself connected in a union that, unrecognised on earth,
would bring them together before the bar of final judgment, and make that their
marriage-altar, for a joint futurity of endless retribution. Over and over
again, the tempter of souls had thrust this idea upon Hester’s
contemplation, and laughed at the passionate and desperate joy with which she
seized, and then strove to cast it from her. She barely looked the idea in the
face, and hastened to bar it in its dungeon. What she compelled herself to
believe—what, finally, she reasoned upon as her motive for continuing a
resident of New England—was half a truth, and half a self-delusion. Here,
she said to herself had been the scene of her guilt, and here should be the
scene of her earthly punishment; and so, perchance, the torture of her daily
shame would at length purge her soul, and work out another purity than that
which she had lost: more saint-like, because the result of martyrdom.</p>
<p>Hester Prynne, therefore, did not flee. On the outskirts of the town, within
the verge of the peninsula, but not in close vicinity to any other habitation,
there was a small thatched cottage. It had been built by an earlier settler,
and abandoned, because the soil about it was too sterile for cultivation, while
its comparative remoteness put it out of the sphere of that social activity
which already marked the habits of the emigrants. It stood on the shore,
looking across a basin of the sea at the forest-covered hills, towards the
west. A clump of scrubby trees, such as alone grew on the peninsula, did not so
much conceal the cottage from view, as seem to denote that here was some object
which would fain have been, or at least ought to be, concealed. In this little
lonesome dwelling, with some slender means that she possessed, and by the
licence of the magistrates, who still kept an inquisitorial watch over her,
Hester established herself, with her infant child. A mystic shadow of suspicion
immediately attached itself to the spot. Children, too young to comprehend
wherefore this woman should be shut out from the sphere of human charities,
would creep nigh enough to behold her plying her needle at the cottage-window,
or standing in the doorway, or labouring in her little garden, or coming forth
along the pathway that led townward, and, discerning the scarlet letter on her
breast, would scamper off with a strange contagious fear.</p>
<p>Lonely as was Hester’s situation, and without a friend on earth who dared
to show himself, she, however, incurred no risk of want. She possessed an art
that sufficed, even in a land that afforded comparatively little scope for its
exercise, to supply food for her thriving infant and herself. It was the art,
then, as now, almost the only one within a woman’s grasp—of
needle-work. She bore on her breast, in the curiously embroidered letter, a
specimen of her delicate and imaginative skill, of which the dames of a court
might gladly have availed themselves, to add the richer and more spiritual
adornment of human ingenuity to their fabrics of silk and gold. Here, indeed,
in the sable simplicity that generally characterised the Puritanic modes of
dress, there might be an infrequent call for the finer productions of her
handiwork. Yet the taste of the age, demanding whatever was elaborate in
compositions of this kind, did not fail to extend its influence over our stern
progenitors, who had cast behind them so many fashions which it might seem
harder to dispense with.</p>
<p>Public ceremonies, such as ordinations, the installation of magistrates, and
all that could give majesty to the forms in which a new government manifested
itself to the people, were, as a matter of policy, marked by a stately and
well-conducted ceremonial, and a sombre, but yet a studied magnificence. Deep
ruffs, painfully wrought bands, and gorgeously embroidered gloves, were all
deemed necessary to the official state of men assuming the reins of power, and
were readily allowed to individuals dignified by rank or wealth, even while
sumptuary laws forbade these and similar extravagances to the plebeian order.
In the array of funerals, too—whether for the apparel of the dead body,
or to typify, by manifold emblematic devices of sable cloth and snowy lawn, the
sorrow of the survivors—there was a frequent and characteristic demand
for such labour as Hester Prynne could supply. Baby-linen—for babies then
wore robes of state—afforded still another possibility of toil and
emolument.</p>
<p>By degrees, not very slowly, her handiwork became what would now be termed the
fashion. Whether from commiseration for a woman of so miserable a destiny; or
from the morbid curiosity that gives a fictitious value even to common or
worthless things; or by whatever other intangible circumstance was then, as
now, sufficient to bestow, on some persons, what others might seek in vain; or
because Hester really filled a gap which must otherwise have remained vacant;
it is certain that she had ready and fairly requited employment for as many
hours as she saw fit to occupy with her needle. Vanity, it may be, chose to
mortify itself, by putting on, for ceremonials of pomp and state, the garments
that had been wrought by her sinful hands. Her needle-work was seen on the ruff
of the Governor; military men wore it on their scarfs, and the minister on his
band; it decked the baby’s little cap; it was shut up, to be mildewed and
moulder away, in the coffins of the dead. But it is not recorded that, in a
single instance, her skill was called in to embroider the white veil which was
to cover the pure blushes of a bride. The exception indicated the ever
relentless vigour with which society frowned upon her sin.</p>
<p>Hester sought not to acquire anything beyond a subsistence, of the plainest and
most ascetic description, for herself, and a simple abundance for her child.
Her own dress was of the coarsest materials and the most sombre hue, with only
that one ornament—the scarlet letter—which it was her doom to wear.
The child’s attire, on the other hand, was distinguished by a fanciful,
or, we may rather say, a fantastic ingenuity, which served, indeed, to heighten
the airy charm that early began to develop itself in the little girl, but which
appeared to have also a deeper meaning. We may speak further of it hereafter.
Except for that small expenditure in the decoration of her infant, Hester
bestowed all her superfluous means in charity, on wretches less miserable than
herself, and who not unfrequently insulted the hand that fed them. Much of the
time, which she might readily have applied to the better efforts of her art,
she employed in making coarse garments for the poor. It is probable that there
was an idea of penance in this mode of occupation, and that she offered up a
real sacrifice of enjoyment in devoting so many hours to such rude handiwork.
She had in her nature a rich, voluptuous, Oriental characteristic—a taste
for the gorgeously beautiful, which, save in the exquisite productions of her
needle, found nothing else, in all the possibilities of her life, to exercise
itself upon. Women derive a pleasure, incomprehensible to the other sex, from
the delicate toil of the needle. To Hester Prynne it might have been a mode of
expressing, and therefore soothing, the passion of her life. Like all other
joys, she rejected it as sin. This morbid meddling of conscience with an
immaterial matter betokened, it is to be feared, no genuine and steadfast
penitence, but something doubtful, something that might be deeply wrong
beneath.</p>
<p>In this manner, Hester Prynne came to have a part to perform in the world. With
her native energy of character and rare capacity, it could not entirely cast
her off, although it had set a mark upon her, more intolerable to a
woman’s heart than that which branded the brow of Cain. In all her
intercourse with society, however, there was nothing that made her feel as if
she belonged to it. Every gesture, every word, and even the silence of those
with whom she came in contact, implied, and often expressed, that she was
banished, and as much alone as if she inhabited another sphere, or communicated
with the common nature by other organs and senses than the rest of human kind.
She stood apart from mortal interests, yet close beside them, like a ghost that
revisits the familiar fireside, and can no longer make itself seen or felt; no
more smile with the household joy, nor mourn with the kindred sorrow; or,
should it succeed in manifesting its forbidden sympathy, awakening only terror
and horrible repugnance. These emotions, in fact, and its bitterest scorn
besides, seemed to be the sole portion that she retained in the universal
heart. It was not an age of delicacy; and her position, although she understood
it well, and was in little danger of forgetting it, was often brought before
her vivid self-perception, like a new anguish, by the rudest touch upon the
tenderest spot. The poor, as we have already said, whom she sought out to be
the objects of her bounty, often reviled the hand that was stretched forth to
succour them. Dames of elevated rank, likewise, whose doors she entered in the
way of her occupation, were accustomed to distil drops of bitterness into her
heart; sometimes through that alchemy of quiet malice, by which women can
concoct a subtle poison from ordinary trifles; and sometimes, also, by a
coarser expression, that fell upon the sufferer’s defenceless breast like
a rough blow upon an ulcerated wound. Hester had schooled herself long and
well; and she never responded to these attacks, save by a flush of crimson that
rose irrepressibly over her pale cheek, and again subsided into the depths of
her bosom. She was patient—a martyr, indeed—but she forebore to
pray for enemies, lest, in spite of her forgiving aspirations, the words of the
blessing should stubbornly twist themselves into a curse.</p>
<p>Continually, and in a thousand other ways, did she feel the innumerable throbs
of anguish that had been so cunningly contrived for her by the undying, the
ever-active sentence of the Puritan tribunal. Clergymen paused in the streets,
to address words of exhortation, that brought a crowd, with its mingled grin
and frown, around the poor, sinful woman. If she entered a church, trusting to
share the Sabbath smile of the Universal Father, it was often her mishap to
find herself the text of the discourse. She grew to have a dread of children;
for they had imbibed from their parents a vague idea of something horrible in
this dreary woman gliding silently through the town, with never any companion
but one only child. Therefore, first allowing her to pass, they pursued her at
a distance with shrill cries, and the utterances of a word that had no distinct
purport to their own minds, but was none the less terrible to her, as
proceeding from lips that babbled it unconsciously. It seemed to argue so wide
a diffusion of her shame, that all nature knew of it; it could have caused her
no deeper pang had the leaves of the trees whispered the dark story among
themselves—had the summer breeze murmured about it—had the wintry
blast shrieked it aloud! Another peculiar torture was felt in the gaze of a new
eye. When strangers looked curiously at the scarlet letter—and none ever
failed to do so—they branded it afresh in Hester’s soul; so that,
oftentimes, she could scarcely refrain, yet always did refrain, from covering
the symbol with her hand. But then, again, an accustomed eye had likewise its
own anguish to inflict. Its cool stare of familiarity was intolerable. From
first to last, in short, Hester Prynne had always this dreadful agony in
feeling a human eye upon the token; the spot never grew callous; it seemed, on
the contrary, to grow more sensitive with daily torture.</p>
<p>But sometimes, once in many days, or perchance in many months, she felt an
eye—a human eye—upon the ignominious brand, that seemed to give a
momentary relief, as if half of her agony were shared. The next instant, back
it all rushed again, with still a deeper throb of pain; for, in that brief
interval, she had sinned anew. (Had Hester sinned alone?)</p>
<p>Her imagination was somewhat affected, and, had she been of a softer moral and
intellectual fibre would have been still more so, by the strange and solitary
anguish of her life. Walking to and fro, with those lonely footsteps, in the
little world with which she was outwardly connected, it now and then appeared
to Hester—if altogether fancy, it was nevertheless too potent to be
resisted—she felt or fancied, then, that the scarlet letter had endowed
her with a new sense. She shuddered to believe, yet could not help believing,
that it gave her a sympathetic knowledge of the hidden sin in other hearts. She
was terror-stricken by the revelations that were thus made. What were they?
Could they be other than the insidious whispers of the bad angel, who would
fain have persuaded the struggling woman, as yet only half his victim, that the
outward guise of purity was but a lie, and that, if truth were everywhere to be
shown, a scarlet letter would blaze forth on many a bosom besides Hester
Prynne’s? Or, must she receive those intimations—so obscure, yet so
distinct—as truth? In all her miserable experience, there was nothing
else so awful and so loathsome as this sense. It perplexed, as well as shocked
her, by the irreverent inopportuneness of the occasions that brought it into
vivid action. Sometimes the red infamy upon her breast would give a sympathetic
throb, as she passed near a venerable minister or magistrate, the model of
piety and justice, to whom that age of antique reverence looked up, as to a
mortal man in fellowship with angels. “What evil thing is at hand?”
would Hester say to herself. Lifting her reluctant eyes, there would be nothing
human within the scope of view, save the form of this earthly saint! Again a
mystic sisterhood would contumaciously assert itself, as she met the sanctified
frown of some matron, who, according to the rumour of all tongues, had kept
cold snow within her bosom throughout life. That unsunned snow in the
matron’s bosom, and the burning shame on Hester Prynne’s—what
had the two in common? Or, once more, the electric thrill would give her
warning—“Behold Hester, here is a companion!” and, looking
up, she would detect the eyes of a young maiden glancing at the scarlet letter,
shyly and aside, and quickly averted, with a faint, chill crimson in her cheeks
as if her purity were somewhat sullied by that momentary glance. O Fiend, whose
talisman was that fatal symbol, wouldst thou leave nothing, whether in youth or
age, for this poor sinner to revere?—such loss of faith is ever one of
the saddest results of sin. Be it accepted as a proof that all was not corrupt
in this poor victim of her own frailty, and man’s hard law, that Hester
Prynne yet struggled to believe that no fellow-mortal was guilty like herself.</p>
<p>The vulgar, who, in those dreary old times, were always contributing a
grotesque horror to what interested their imaginations, had a story about the
scarlet letter which we might readily work up into a terrific legend. They
averred that the symbol was not mere scarlet cloth, tinged in an earthly
dye-pot, but was red-hot with infernal fire, and could be seen glowing all
alight whenever Hester Prynne walked abroad in the night-time. And we must
needs say it seared Hester’s bosom so deeply, that perhaps there was more
truth in the rumour than our modern incredulity may be inclined to admit.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap06"></SPAN>VI.<br/> PEARL</h2>
<p>We have as yet hardly spoken of the infant; that little creature, whose
innocent life had sprung, by the inscrutable decree of Providence, a lovely and
immortal flower, out of the rank luxuriance of a guilty passion. How strange it
seemed to the sad woman, as she watched the growth, and the beauty that became
every day more brilliant, and the intelligence that threw its quivering
sunshine over the tiny features of this child! Her Pearl—for so had
Hester called her; not as a name expressive of her aspect, which had nothing of
the calm, white, unimpassioned lustre that would be indicated by the
comparison. But she named the infant “Pearl,” as being of great
price—purchased with all she had—her mother’s only treasure!
How strange, indeed! Man had marked this woman’s sin by a scarlet letter,
which had such potent and disastrous efficacy that no human sympathy could
reach her, save it were sinful like herself. God, as a direct consequence of
the sin which man thus punished, had given her a lovely child, whose place was
on that same dishonoured bosom, to connect her parent for ever with the race
and descent of mortals, and to be finally a blessed soul in heaven! Yet these
thoughts affected Hester Prynne less with hope than apprehension. She knew that
her deed had been evil; she could have no faith, therefore, that its result
would be good. Day after day she looked fearfully into the child’s
expanding nature, ever dreading to detect some dark and wild peculiarity that
should correspond with the guiltiness to which she owed her being.</p>
<p>Certainly there was no physical defect. By its perfect shape, its vigour, and
its natural dexterity in the use of all its untried limbs, the infant was
worthy to have been brought forth in Eden: worthy to have been left there to be
the plaything of the angels after the world’s first parents were driven
out. The child had a native grace which does not invariably co-exist with
faultless beauty; its attire, however simple, always impressed the beholder as
if it were the very garb that precisely became it best. But little Pearl was
not clad in rustic weeds. Her mother, with a morbid purpose that may be better
understood hereafter, had bought the richest tissues that could be procured,
and allowed her imaginative faculty its full play in the arrangement and
decoration of the dresses which the child wore before the public eye. So
magnificent was the small figure when thus arrayed, and such was the splendour
of Pearl’s own proper beauty, shining through the gorgeous robes which
might have extinguished a paler loveliness, that there was an absolute circle
of radiance around her on the darksome cottage floor. And yet a russet gown,
torn and soiled with the child’s rude play, made a picture of her just as
perfect. Pearl’s aspect was imbued with a spell of infinite variety; in
this one child there were many children, comprehending the full scope between
the wild-flower prettiness of a peasant-baby, and the pomp, in little, of an
infant princess. Throughout all, however, there was a trait of passion, a
certain depth of hue, which she never lost; and if in any of her changes, she
had grown fainter or paler, she would have ceased to be herself—it would
have been no longer Pearl!</p>
<p>This outward mutability indicated, and did not more than fairly express, the
various properties of her inner life. Her nature appeared to possess depth,
too, as well as variety; but—or else Hester’s fears deceived
her—it lacked reference and adaptation to the world into which she was
born. The child could not be made amenable to rules. In giving her existence a
great law had been broken; and the result was a being whose elements were
perhaps beautiful and brilliant, but all in disorder, or with an order peculiar
to themselves, amidst which the point of variety and arrangement was difficult
or impossible to be discovered. Hester could only account for the child’s
character—and even then most vaguely and imperfectly—by recalling
what she herself had been during that momentous period while Pearl was imbibing
her soul from the spiritual world, and her bodily frame from its material of
earth. The mother’s impassioned state had been the medium through which
were transmitted to the unborn infant the rays of its moral life; and, however
white and clear originally, they had taken the deep stains of crimson and gold,
the fiery lustre, the black shadow, and the untempered light of the intervening
substance. Above all, the warfare of Hester’s spirit at that epoch was
perpetuated in Pearl. She could recognize her wild, desperate, defiant mood,
the flightiness of her temper, and even some of the very cloud-shapes of gloom
and despondency that had brooded in her heart. They were now illuminated by the
morning radiance of a young child’s disposition, but, later in the day of
earthly existence, might be prolific of the storm and whirlwind.</p>
<p>The discipline of the family in those days was of a far more rigid kind than
now. The frown, the harsh rebuke, the frequent application of the rod, enjoined
by Scriptural authority, were used, not merely in the way of punishment for
actual offences, but as a wholesome regimen for the growth and promotion of all
childish virtues. Hester Prynne, nevertheless, the loving mother of this one
child, ran little risk of erring on the side of undue severity. Mindful,
however, of her own errors and misfortunes, she early sought to impose a tender
but strict control over the infant immortality that was committed to her
charge. But the task was beyond her skill. After testing both smiles and
frowns, and proving that neither mode of treatment possessed any calculable
influence, Hester was ultimately compelled to stand aside and permit the child
to be swayed by her own impulses. Physical compulsion or restraint was
effectual, of course, while it lasted. As to any other kind of discipline,
whether addressed to her mind or heart, little Pearl might or might not be
within its reach, in accordance with the caprice that ruled the moment. Her
mother, while Pearl was yet an infant, grew acquainted with a certain peculiar
look, that warned her when it would be labour thrown away to insist, persuade
or plead.</p>
<p>It was a look so intelligent, yet inexplicable, perverse, sometimes so
malicious, but generally accompanied by a wild flow of spirits, that Hester
could not help questioning at such moments whether Pearl was a human child. She
seemed rather an airy sprite, which, after playing its fantastic sports for a
little while upon the cottage floor, would flit away with a mocking smile.
Whenever that look appeared in her wild, bright, deeply black eyes, it invested
her with a strange remoteness and intangibility: it was as if she were hovering
in the air, and might vanish, like a glimmering light that comes we know not
whence and goes we know not whither. Beholding it, Hester was constrained to
rush towards the child—to pursue the little elf in the flight which she
invariably began—to snatch her to her bosom with a close pressure and
earnest kisses—not so much from overflowing love as to assure herself
that Pearl was flesh and blood, and not utterly delusive. But Pearl’s
laugh, when she was caught, though full of merriment and music, made her mother
more doubtful than before.</p>
<p>Heart-smitten at this bewildering and baffling spell, that so often came
between herself and her sole treasure, whom she had bought so dear, and who was
all her world, Hester sometimes burst into passionate tears. Then,
perhaps—for there was no foreseeing how it might affect her—Pearl
would frown, and clench her little fist, and harden her small features into a
stern, unsympathising look of discontent. Not seldom she would laugh anew, and
louder than before, like a thing incapable and unintelligent of human sorrow.
Or—but this more rarely happened—she would be convulsed with rage
of grief and sob out her love for her mother in broken words, and seem intent
on proving that she had a heart by breaking it. Yet Hester was hardly safe in
confiding herself to that gusty tenderness: it passed as suddenly as it came.
Brooding over all these matters, the mother felt like one who has evoked a
spirit, but, by some irregularity in the process of conjuration, has failed to
win the master-word that should control this new and incomprehensible
intelligence. Her only real comfort was when the child lay in the placidity of
sleep. Then she was sure of her, and tasted hours of quiet, sad, delicious
happiness; until—perhaps with that perverse expression glimmering from
beneath her opening lids—little Pearl awoke!</p>
<p>How soon—with what strange rapidity, indeed—did Pearl arrive at an
age that was capable of social intercourse beyond the mother’s ever-ready
smile and nonsense-words! And then what a happiness would it have been could
Hester Prynne have heard her clear, bird-like voice mingling with the uproar of
other childish voices, and have distinguished and unravelled her own
darling’s tones, amid all the entangled outcry of a group of sportive
children. But this could never be. Pearl was a born outcast of the infantile
world. An imp of evil, emblem and product of sin, she had no right among
christened infants. Nothing was more remarkable than the instinct, as it
seemed, with which the child comprehended her loneliness: the destiny that had
drawn an inviolable circle round about her: the whole peculiarity, in short, of
her position in respect to other children. Never since her release from prison
had Hester met the public gaze without her. In all her walks about the town,
Pearl, too, was there: first as the babe in arms, and afterwards as the little
girl, small companion of her mother, holding a forefinger with her whole grasp,
and tripping along at the rate of three or four footsteps to one of
Hester’s. She saw the children of the settlement on the grassy margin of
the street, or at the domestic thresholds, disporting themselves in such grim
fashions as the Puritanic nurture would permit; playing at going to church,
perchance, or at scourging Quakers; or taking scalps in a sham fight with the
Indians, or scaring one another with freaks of imitative witchcraft. Pearl saw,
and gazed intently, but never sought to make acquaintance. If spoken to, she
would not speak again. If the children gathered about her, as they sometimes
did, Pearl would grow positively terrible in her puny wrath, snatching up
stones to fling at them, with shrill, incoherent exclamations, that made her
mother tremble, because they had so much the sound of a witch’s anathemas
in some unknown tongue.</p>
<p>The truth was, that the little Puritans, being of the most intolerant brood
that ever lived, had got a vague idea of something outlandish, unearthly, or at
variance with ordinary fashions, in the mother and child, and therefore scorned
them in their hearts, and not unfrequently reviled them with their tongues.
Pearl felt the sentiment, and requited it with the bitterest hatred that can be
supposed to rankle in a childish bosom. These outbreaks of a fierce temper had
a kind of value, and even comfort for the mother; because there was at least an
intelligible earnestness in the mood, instead of the fitful caprice that so
often thwarted her in the child’s manifestations. It appalled her,
nevertheless, to discern here, again, a shadowy reflection of the evil that had
existed in herself. All this enmity and passion had Pearl inherited, by
inalienable right, out of Hester’s heart. Mother and daughter stood
together in the same circle of seclusion from human society; and in the nature
of the child seemed to be perpetuated those unquiet elements that had
distracted Hester Prynne before Pearl’s birth, but had since begun to be
soothed away by the softening influences of maternity.</p>
<p>At home, within and around her mother’s cottage, Pearl wanted not a wide
and various circle of acquaintance. The spell of life went forth from her
ever-creative spirit, and communicated itself to a thousand objects, as a torch
kindles a flame wherever it may be applied. The unlikeliest materials—a
stick, a bunch of rags, a flower—were the puppets of Pearl’s
witchcraft, and, without undergoing any outward change, became spiritually
adapted to whatever drama occupied the stage of her inner world. Her one
baby-voice served a multitude of imaginary personages, old and young, to talk
withal. The pine-trees, aged, black, and solemn, and flinging groans and other
melancholy utterances on the breeze, needed little transformation to figure as
Puritan elders; the ugliest weeds of the garden were their children, whom Pearl
smote down and uprooted most unmercifully. It was wonderful, the vast variety
of forms into which she threw her intellect, with no continuity, indeed, but
darting up and dancing, always in a state of preternatural activity—soon
sinking down, as if exhausted by so rapid and feverish a tide of life—and
succeeded by other shapes of a similar wild energy. It was like nothing so much
as the phantasmagoric play of the northern lights. In the mere exercise of the
fancy, however, and the sportiveness of a growing mind, there might be a little
more than was observable in other children of bright faculties; except as
Pearl, in the dearth of human playmates, was thrown more upon the visionary
throng which she created. The singularity lay in the hostile feelings with
which the child regarded all these offsprings of her own heart and mind. She
never created a friend, but seemed always to be sowing broadcast the
dragon’s teeth, whence sprung a harvest of armed enemies, against whom
she rushed to battle. It was inexpressibly sad—then what depth of sorrow
to a mother, who felt in her own heart the cause—to observe, in one so
young, this constant recognition of an adverse world, and so fierce a training
of the energies that were to make good her cause in the contest that must
ensue.</p>
<p>Gazing at Pearl, Hester Prynne often dropped her work upon her knees, and cried
out with an agony which she would fain have hidden, but which made utterance
for itself betwixt speech and a groan—“O Father in Heaven—if
Thou art still my Father—what is this being which I have brought into the
world?” And Pearl, overhearing the ejaculation, or aware through some
more subtile channel, of those throbs of anguish, would turn her vivid and
beautiful little face upon her mother, smile with sprite-like intelligence, and
resume her play.</p>
<p>One peculiarity of the child’s deportment remains yet to be told. The
very first thing which she had noticed in her life, was—what?—not
the mother’s smile, responding to it, as other babies do, by that faint,
embryo smile of the little mouth, remembered so doubtfully afterwards, and with
such fond discussion whether it were indeed a smile. By no means! But that
first object of which Pearl seemed to become aware was—shall we say
it?—the scarlet letter on Hester’s bosom! One day, as her mother
stooped over the cradle, the infant’s eyes had been caught by the
glimmering of the gold embroidery about the letter; and putting up her little
hand she grasped at it, smiling, not doubtfully, but with a decided gleam, that
gave her face the look of a much older child. Then, gasping for breath, did
Hester Prynne clutch the fatal token, instinctively endeavouring to tear it
away, so infinite was the torture inflicted by the intelligent touch of
Pearl’s baby-hand. Again, as if her mother’s agonised gesture were
meant only to make sport for her, did little Pearl look into her eyes, and
smile. From that epoch, except when the child was asleep, Hester had never felt
a moment’s safety: not a moment’s calm enjoyment of her. Weeks, it
is true, would sometimes elapse, during which Pearl’s gaze might never
once be fixed upon the scarlet letter; but then, again, it would come at
unawares, like the stroke of sudden death, and always with that peculiar smile
and odd expression of the eyes.</p>
<p>Once this freakish, elvish cast came into the child’s eyes while Hester
was looking at her own image in them, as mothers are fond of doing; and
suddenly—for women in solitude, and with troubled hearts, are pestered
with unaccountable delusions—she fancied that she beheld, not her own
miniature portrait, but another face in the small black mirror of Pearl’s
eye. It was a face, fiend-like, full of smiling malice, yet bearing the
semblance of features that she had known full well, though seldom with a smile,
and never with malice in them. It was as if an evil spirit possessed the child,
and had just then peeped forth in mockery. Many a time afterwards had Hester
been tortured, though less vividly, by the same illusion.</p>
<p>In the afternoon of a certain summer’s day, after Pearl grew big enough
to run about, she amused herself with gathering handfuls of wild flowers, and
flinging them, one by one, at her mother’s bosom; dancing up and down
like a little elf whenever she hit the scarlet letter. Hester’s first
motion had been to cover her bosom with her clasped hands. But whether from
pride or resignation, or a feeling that her penance might best be wrought out
by this unutterable pain, she resisted the impulse, and sat erect, pale as
death, looking sadly into little Pearl’s wild eyes. Still came the
battery of flowers, almost invariably hitting the mark, and covering the
mother’s breast with hurts for which she could find no balm in this
world, nor knew how to seek it in another. At last, her shot being all
expended, the child stood still and gazed at Hester, with that little laughing
image of a fiend peeping out—or, whether it peeped or no, her mother so
imagined it—from the unsearchable abyss of her black eyes.</p>
<p>“Child, what art thou?” cried the mother.</p>
<p>“Oh, I am your little Pearl!” answered the child.</p>
<p>But while she said it, Pearl laughed, and began to dance up and down with the
humoursome gesticulation of a little imp, whose next freak might be to fly up
the chimney.</p>
<p>“Art thou my child, in very truth?” asked Hester.</p>
<p>Nor did she put the question altogether idly, but, for the moment, with a
portion of genuine earnestness; for, such was Pearl’s wonderful
intelligence, that her mother half doubted whether she were not acquainted with
the secret spell of her existence, and might not now reveal herself.</p>
<p>“Yes; I am little Pearl!” repeated the child, continuing her
antics.</p>
<p>“Thou art not my child! Thou art no Pearl of mine!” said the mother
half playfully; for it was often the case that a sportive impulse came over her
in the midst of her deepest suffering. “Tell me, then, what thou art, and
who sent thee hither?”</p>
<p>“Tell me, mother!” said the child, seriously, coming up to Hester,
and pressing herself close to her knees. “Do thou tell me!”</p>
<p>“Thy Heavenly Father sent thee!” answered Hester Prynne.</p>
<p>But she said it with a hesitation that did not escape the acuteness of the
child. Whether moved only by her ordinary freakishness, or because an evil
spirit prompted her, she put up her small forefinger and touched the scarlet
letter.</p>
<p>“He did not send me!” cried she, positively. “I have no
Heavenly Father!”</p>
<p>“Hush, Pearl, hush! Thou must not talk so!” answered the mother,
suppressing a groan. “He sent us all into the world. He sent even me, thy
mother. Then, much more thee! Or, if not, thou strange and elfish child, whence
didst thou come?”</p>
<p>“Tell me! Tell me!” repeated Pearl, no longer seriously, but
laughing and capering about the floor. “It is thou that must tell
me!”</p>
<p>But Hester could not resolve the query, being herself in a dismal labyrinth of
doubt. She remembered—betwixt a smile and a shudder—the talk of the
neighbouring townspeople, who, seeking vainly elsewhere for the child’s
paternity, and observing some of her odd attributes, had given out that poor
little Pearl was a demon offspring: such as, ever since old Catholic times, had
occasionally been seen on earth, through the agency of their mother’s
sin, and to promote some foul and wicked purpose. Luther, according to the
scandal of his monkish enemies, was a brat of that hellish breed; nor was Pearl
the only child to whom this inauspicious origin was assigned among the New
England Puritans.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap07"></SPAN>VII.<br/> THE GOVERNOR’S HALL</h2>
<p>Hester Prynne went one day to the mansion of Governor Bellingham, with a pair
of gloves which she had fringed and embroidered to his order, and which were to
be worn on some great occasion of state; for, though the chances of a popular
election had caused this former ruler to descend a step or two from the highest
rank, he still held an honourable and influential place among the colonial
magistracy.</p>
<p>Another and far more important reason than the delivery of a pair of
embroidered gloves, impelled Hester, at this time, to seek an interview with a
personage of so much power and activity in the affairs of the settlement. It
had reached her ears that there was a design on the part of some of the leading
inhabitants, cherishing the more rigid order of principles in religion and
government, to deprive her of her child. On the supposition that Pearl, as
already hinted, was of demon origin, these good people not unreasonably argued
that a Christian interest in the mother’s soul required them to remove
such a stumbling-block from her path. If the child, on the other hand, were
really capable of moral and religious growth, and possessed the elements of
ultimate salvation, then, surely, it would enjoy all the fairer prospect of
these advantages by being transferred to wiser and better guardianship than
Hester Prynne’s. Among those who promoted the design, Governor Bellingham
was said to be one of the most busy. It may appear singular, and, indeed, not a
little ludicrous, that an affair of this kind, which in later days would have
been referred to no higher jurisdiction than that of the select men of the
town, should then have been a question publicly discussed, and on which
statesmen of eminence took sides. At that epoch of pristine simplicity,
however, matters of even slighter public interest, and of far less intrinsic
weight than the welfare of Hester and her child, were strangely mixed up with
the deliberations of legislators and acts of state. The period was hardly, if
at all, earlier than that of our story, when a dispute concerning the right of
property in a pig not only caused a fierce and bitter contest in the
legislative body of the colony, but resulted in an important modification of
the framework itself of the legislature.</p>
<p>Full of concern, therefore—but so conscious of her own right that it
seemed scarcely an unequal match between the public on the one side, and a
lonely woman, backed by the sympathies of nature, on the other—Hester
Prynne set forth from her solitary cottage. Little Pearl, of course, was her
companion. She was now of an age to run lightly along by her mother’s
side, and, constantly in motion from morn till sunset, could have accomplished
a much longer journey than that before her. Often, nevertheless, more from
caprice than necessity, she demanded to be taken up in arms; but was soon as
imperious to be let down again, and frisked onward before Hester on the grassy
pathway, with many a harmless trip and tumble. We have spoken of Pearl’s
rich and luxuriant beauty—a beauty that shone with deep and vivid tints,
a bright complexion, eyes possessing intensity both of depth and glow, and hair
already of a deep, glossy brown, and which, in after years, would be nearly
akin to black. There was fire in her and throughout her: she seemed the
unpremeditated offshoot of a passionate moment. Her mother, in contriving the
child’s garb, had allowed the gorgeous tendencies of her imagination
their full play, arraying her in a crimson velvet tunic of a peculiar cut,
abundantly embroidered in fantasies and flourishes of gold thread. So much
strength of colouring, which must have given a wan and pallid aspect to cheeks
of a fainter bloom, was admirably adapted to Pearl’s beauty, and made her
the very brightest little jet of flame that ever danced upon the earth.</p>
<p>But it was a remarkable attribute of this garb, and indeed, of the
child’s whole appearance, that it irresistibly and inevitably reminded
the beholder of the token which Hester Prynne was doomed to wear upon her
bosom. It was the scarlet letter in another form: the scarlet letter endowed
with life! The mother herself—as if the red ignominy were so deeply
scorched into her brain that all her conceptions assumed its form—had
carefully wrought out the similitude, lavishing many hours of morbid ingenuity
to create an analogy between the object of her affection and the emblem of her
guilt and torture. But, in truth, Pearl was the one as well as the other; and
only in consequence of that identity had Hester contrived so perfectly to
represent the scarlet letter in her appearance.</p>
<p>As the two wayfarers came within the precincts of the town, the children of the
Puritans looked up from their play,—or what passed for play with those
sombre little urchins—and spoke gravely one to another.</p>
<p>“Behold, verily, there is the woman of the scarlet letter: and of a
truth, moreover, there is the likeness of the scarlet letter running along by
her side! Come, therefore, and let us fling mud at them!”</p>
<p>But Pearl, who was a dauntless child, after frowning, stamping her foot, and
shaking her little hand with a variety of threatening gestures, suddenly made a
rush at the knot of her enemies, and put them all to flight. She resembled, in
her fierce pursuit of them, an infant pestilence—the scarlet fever, or
some such half-fledged angel of judgment—whose mission was to punish the
sins of the rising generation. She screamed and shouted, too, with a terrific
volume of sound, which, doubtless, caused the hearts of the fugitives to quake
within them. The victory accomplished, Pearl returned quietly to her mother,
and looked up, smiling, into her face.</p>
<p>Without further adventure, they reached the dwelling of Governor Bellingham.
This was a large wooden house, built in a fashion of which there are specimens
still extant in the streets of our older towns now moss-grown, crumbling to
decay, and melancholy at heart with the many sorrowful or joyful occurrences,
remembered or forgotten, that have happened and passed away within their dusky
chambers. Then, however, there was the freshness of the passing year on its
exterior, and the cheerfulness, gleaming forth from the sunny windows, of a
human habitation, into which death had never entered. It had, indeed, a very
cheery aspect, the walls being overspread with a kind of stucco, in which
fragments of broken glass were plentifully intermixed; so that, when the
sunshine fell aslant-wise over the front of the edifice, it glittered and
sparkled as if diamonds had been flung against it by the double handful. The
brilliancy might have befitted Aladdin’s palace rather than the mansion
of a grave old Puritan ruler. It was further decorated with strange and
seemingly cabalistic figures and diagrams, suitable to the quaint taste of the
age which had been drawn in the stucco, when newly laid on, and had now grown
hard and durable, for the admiration of after times.</p>
<p>Pearl, looking at this bright wonder of a house began to caper and dance, and
imperatively required that the whole breadth of sunshine should be stripped off
its front, and given her to play with.</p>
<p>“No, my little Pearl!” said her mother; “thou must gather
thine own sunshine. I have none to give thee!”</p>
<p>They approached the door, which was of an arched form, and flanked on each side
by a narrow tower or projection of the edifice, in both of which were
lattice-windows, the wooden shutters to close over them at need. Lifting the
iron hammer that hung at the portal, Hester Prynne gave a summons, which was
answered by one of the Governor’s bond-servants—a free-born
Englishman, but now a seven years’ slave. During that term he was to be
the property of his master, and as much a commodity of bargain and sale as an
ox, or a joint-stool. The serf wore the customary garb of serving-men at that
period, and long before, in the old hereditary halls of England.</p>
<p>“Is the worshipful Governor Bellingham within?” inquired Hester.</p>
<p>“Yea, forsooth,” replied the bond-servant, staring with wide-open
eyes at the scarlet letter, which, being a new-comer in the country, he had
never before seen. “Yea, his honourable worship is within. But he hath a
godly minister or two with him, and likewise a leech. Ye may not see his
worship now.”</p>
<p>“Nevertheless, I will enter,” answered Hester Prynne; and the
bond-servant, perhaps judging from the decision of her air, and the glittering
symbol in her bosom, that she was a great lady in the land, offered no
opposition.</p>
<p>So the mother and little Pearl were admitted into the hall of entrance. With
many variations, suggested by the nature of his building materials, diversity
of climate, and a different mode of social life, Governor Bellingham had
planned his new habitation after the residences of gentlemen of fair estate in
his native land. Here, then, was a wide and reasonably lofty hall, extending
through the whole depth of the house, and forming a medium of general
communication, more or less directly, with all the other apartments. At one
extremity, this spacious room was lighted by the windows of the two towers,
which formed a small recess on either side of the portal. At the other end,
though partly muffled by a curtain, it was more powerfully illuminated by one
of those embowed hall windows which we read of in old books, and which was
provided with a deep and cushioned seat. Here, on the cushion, lay a folio
tome, probably of the Chronicles of England, or other such substantial
literature; even as, in our own days, we scatter gilded volumes on the centre
table, to be turned over by the casual guest. The furniture of the hall
consisted of some ponderous chairs, the backs of which were elaborately carved
with wreaths of oaken flowers; and likewise a table in the same taste, the
whole being of the Elizabethan age, or perhaps earlier, and heirlooms,
transferred hither from the Governor’s paternal home. On the
table—in token that the sentiment of old English hospitality had not been
left behind—stood a large pewter tankard, at the bottom of which, had
Hester or Pearl peeped into it, they might have seen the frothy remnant of a
recent draught of ale.</p>
<p>On the wall hung a row of portraits, representing the forefathers of the
Bellingham lineage, some with armour on their breasts, and others with stately
ruffs and robes of peace. All were characterised by the sternness and severity
which old portraits so invariably put on, as if they were the ghosts, rather
than the pictures, of departed worthies, and were gazing with harsh and
intolerant criticism at the pursuits and enjoyments of living men.</p>
<p>At about the centre of the oaken panels that lined the hall was suspended a
suit of mail, not, like the pictures, an ancestral relic, but of the most
modern date; for it had been manufactured by a skilful armourer in London, the
same year in which Governor Bellingham came over to New England. There was a
steel head-piece, a cuirass, a gorget and greaves, with a pair of gauntlets and
a sword hanging beneath; all, and especially the helmet and breastplate, so
highly burnished as to glow with white radiance, and scatter an illumination
everywhere about upon the floor. This bright panoply was not meant for mere
idle show, but had been worn by the Governor on many a solemn muster and
training field, and had glittered, moreover, at the head of a regiment in the
Pequod war. For, though bred a lawyer, and accustomed to speak of Bacon, Coke,
Noye, and Finch, as his professional associates, the exigencies of this new
country had transformed Governor Bellingham into a soldier, as well as a
statesman and ruler.</p>
<p>Little Pearl, who was as greatly pleased with the gleaming armour as she had
been with the glittering frontispiece of the house, spent some time looking
into the polished mirror of the breastplate.</p>
<p>“Mother,” cried she, “I see you here. Look! Look!”</p>
<p>Hester looked by way of humouring the child; and she saw that, owing to the
peculiar effect of this convex mirror, the scarlet letter was represented in
exaggerated and gigantic proportions, so as to be greatly the most prominent
feature of her appearance. In truth, she seemed absolutely hidden behind it.
Pearl pointed upwards also, at a similar picture in the head-piece; smiling at
her mother, with the elfish intelligence that was so familiar an expression on
her small physiognomy. That look of naughty merriment was likewise reflected in
the mirror, with so much breadth and intensity of effect, that it made Hester
Prynne feel as if it could not be the image of her own child, but of an imp who
was seeking to mould itself into Pearl’s shape.</p>
<p>“Come along, Pearl,” said she, drawing her away, “Come and
look into this fair garden. It may be we shall see flowers there; more
beautiful ones than we find in the woods.”</p>
<p>Pearl accordingly ran to the bow-window, at the further end of the hall, and
looked along the vista of a garden walk, carpeted with closely-shaven grass,
and bordered with some rude and immature attempt at shrubbery. But the
proprietor appeared already to have relinquished as hopeless, the effort to
perpetuate on this side of the Atlantic, in a hard soil, and amid the close
struggle for subsistence, the native English taste for ornamental gardening.
Cabbages grew in plain sight; and a pumpkin-vine, rooted at some distance, had
run across the intervening space, and deposited one of its gigantic products
directly beneath the hall window, as if to warn the Governor that this great
lump of vegetable gold was as rich an ornament as New England earth would offer
him. There were a few rose-bushes, however, and a number of apple-trees,
probably the descendants of those planted by the Reverend Mr. Blackstone, the
first settler of the peninsula; that half mythological personage who rides
through our early annals, seated on the back of a bull.</p>
<p>Pearl, seeing the rose-bushes, began to cry for a red rose, and would not be
pacified.</p>
<p>“Hush, child—hush!” said her mother, earnestly. “Do not
cry, dear little Pearl! I hear voices in the garden. The Governor is coming,
and gentlemen along with him.”</p>
<p>In fact, adown the vista of the garden avenue, a number of persons were seen
approaching towards the house. Pearl, in utter scorn of her mother’s
attempt to quiet her, gave an eldritch scream, and then became silent, not from
any notion of obedience, but because the quick and mobile curiosity of her
disposition was excited by the appearance of those new personages.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap08"></SPAN>VIII.<br/> THE ELF-CHILD AND THE MINISTER</h2>
<p>Governor Bellingham, in a loose gown and easy cap—such as elderly
gentlemen loved to endue themselves with, in their domestic
privacy—walked foremost, and appeared to be showing off his estate, and
expatiating on his projected improvements. The wide circumference of an
elaborate ruff, beneath his grey beard, in the antiquated fashion of King
James’s reign, caused his head to look not a little like that of John the
Baptist in a charger. The impression made by his aspect, so rigid and severe,
and frost-bitten with more than autumnal age, was hardly in keeping with the
appliances of worldly enjoyment wherewith he had evidently done his utmost to
surround himself. But it is an error to suppose that our great
forefathers—though accustomed to speak and think of human existence as a
state merely of trial and warfare, and though unfeignedly prepared to sacrifice
goods and life at the behest of duty—made it a matter of conscience to
reject such means of comfort, or even luxury, as lay fairly within their grasp.
This creed was never taught, for instance, by the venerable pastor, John
Wilson, whose beard, white as a snow-drift, was seen over Governor
Bellingham’s shoulders, while its wearer suggested that pears and peaches
might yet be naturalised in the New England climate, and that purple grapes
might possibly be compelled to flourish against the sunny garden-wall. The old
clergyman, nurtured at the rich bosom of the English Church, had a long
established and legitimate taste for all good and comfortable things, and
however stern he might show himself in the pulpit, or in his public reproof of
such transgressions as that of Hester Prynne, still, the genial benevolence of
his private life had won him warmer affection than was accorded to any of his
professional contemporaries.</p>
<p>Behind the Governor and Mr. Wilson came two other guests—one, the
Reverend Arthur Dimmesdale, whom the reader may remember as having taken a
brief and reluctant part in the scene of Hester Prynne’s disgrace; and,
in close companionship with him, old Roger Chillingworth, a person of great
skill in physic, who for two or three years past had been settled in the town.
It was understood that this learned man was the physician as well as friend of
the young minister, whose health had severely suffered of late by his too
unreserved self-sacrifice to the labours and duties of the pastoral relation.</p>
<p>The Governor, in advance of his visitors, ascended one or two steps, and,
throwing open the leaves of the great hall window, found himself close to
little Pearl. The shadow of the curtain fell on Hester Prynne, and partially
concealed her.</p>
<p>“What have we here?” said Governor Bellingham, looking with
surprise at the scarlet little figure before him. “I profess, I have
never seen the like since my days of vanity, in old King James’s time,
when I was wont to esteem it a high favour to be admitted to a court mask!
There used to be a swarm of these small apparitions in holiday time, and we
called them children of the Lord of Misrule. But how gat such a guest into my
hall?”</p>
<p>“Ay, indeed!” cried good old Mr. Wilson. “What little bird of
scarlet plumage may this be? Methinks I have seen just such figures when the
sun has been shining through a richly painted window, and tracing out the
golden and crimson images across the floor. But that was in the old land.
Prithee, young one, who art thou, and what has ailed thy mother to bedizen thee
in this strange fashion? Art thou a Christian child—ha? Dost know thy
catechism? Or art thou one of those naughty elfs or fairies whom we thought to
have left behind us, with other relics of Papistry, in merry old
England?”</p>
<p>“I am mother’s child,” answered the scarlet vision,
“and my name is Pearl!”</p>
<p>“Pearl?—Ruby, rather—or Coral!—or Red Rose, at the very
least, judging from thy hue!” responded the old minister, putting forth
his hand in a vain attempt to pat little Pearl on the cheek. “But where
is this mother of thine? Ah! I see,” he added; and, turning to Governor
Bellingham, whispered, “This is the selfsame child of whom we have held
speech together; and behold here the unhappy woman, Hester Prynne, her
mother!”</p>
<p>“Sayest thou so?” cried the Governor. “Nay, we might have
judged that such a child’s mother must needs be a scarlet woman, and a
worthy type of her of Babylon! But she comes at a good time, and we will look
into this matter forthwith.”</p>
<p>Governor Bellingham stepped through the window into the hall, followed by his
three guests.</p>
<p>“Hester Prynne,” said he, fixing his naturally stern regard on the
wearer of the scarlet letter, “there hath been much question concerning
thee of late. The point hath been weightily discussed, whether we, that are of
authority and influence, do well discharge our consciences by trusting an
immortal soul, such as there is in yonder child, to the guidance of one who
hath stumbled and fallen amid the pitfalls of this world. Speak thou, the
child’s own mother! Were it not, thinkest thou, for thy little
one’s temporal and eternal welfare that she be taken out of thy charge,
and clad soberly, and disciplined strictly, and instructed in the truths of
heaven and earth? What canst thou do for the child in this kind?”</p>
<p>“I can teach my little Pearl what I have learned from this!”
answered Hester Prynne, laying her finger on the red token.</p>
<p>“Woman, it is thy badge of shame!” replied the stern magistrate.
“It is because of the stain which that letter indicates that we would
transfer thy child to other hands.”</p>
<p>“Nevertheless,” said the mother, calmly, though growing more pale,
“this badge hath taught me—it daily teaches me—it is teaching
me at this moment—lessons whereof my child may be the wiser and better,
albeit they can profit nothing to myself.”</p>
<p>“We will judge warily,” said Bellingham, “and look well what
we are about to do. Good Master Wilson, I pray you, examine this
Pearl—since that is her name—and see whether she hath had such
Christian nurture as befits a child of her age.”</p>
<p>The old minister seated himself in an arm-chair and made an effort to draw
Pearl betwixt his knees. But the child, unaccustomed to the touch or
familiarity of any but her mother, escaped through the open window, and stood
on the upper step, looking like a wild tropical bird of rich plumage, ready to
take flight into the upper air. Mr. Wilson, not a little astonished at this
outbreak—for he was a grandfatherly sort of personage, and usually a vast
favourite with children—essayed, however, to proceed with the
examination.</p>
<p>“Pearl,” said he, with great solemnity, “thou must take heed
to instruction, that so, in due season, thou mayest wear in thy bosom the pearl
of great price. Canst thou tell me, my child, who made thee?”</p>
<p>Now Pearl knew well enough who made her, for Hester Prynne, the daughter of a
pious home, very soon after her talk with the child about her Heavenly Father,
had begun to inform her of those truths which the human spirit, at whatever
stage of immaturity, imbibes with such eager interest. Pearl,
therefore—so large were the attainments of her three years’
lifetime—could have borne a fair examination in the New England Primer,
or the first column of the Westminster Catechisms, although unacquainted with
the outward form of either of those celebrated works. But that perversity,
which all children have more or less of, and of which little Pearl had a
tenfold portion, now, at the most inopportune moment, took thorough possession
of her, and closed her lips, or impelled her to speak words amiss. After
putting her finger in her mouth, with many ungracious refusals to answer good
Mr. Wilson’s question, the child finally announced that she had not been
made at all, but had been plucked by her mother off the bush of wild roses that
grew by the prison-door.</p>
<p>This phantasy was probably suggested by the near proximity of the
Governor’s red roses, as Pearl stood outside of the window, together with
her recollection of the prison rose-bush, which she had passed in coming
hither.</p>
<p>Old Roger Chillingworth, with a smile on his face, whispered something in the
young clergyman’s ear. Hester Prynne looked at the man of skill, and even
then, with her fate hanging in the balance, was startled to perceive what a
change had come over his features—how much uglier they were, how his dark
complexion seemed to have grown duskier, and his figure more
misshapen—since the days when she had familiarly known him. She met his
eyes for an instant, but was immediately constrained to give all her attention
to the scene now going forward.</p>
<p>“This is awful!” cried the Governor, slowly recovering from the
astonishment into which Pearl’s response had thrown him. “Here is a
child of three years old, and she cannot tell who made her! Without question,
she is equally in the dark as to her soul, its present depravity, and future
destiny! Methinks, gentlemen, we need inquire no further.”</p>
<p>Hester caught hold of Pearl, and drew her forcibly into her arms, confronting
the old Puritan magistrate with almost a fierce expression. Alone in the world,
cast off by it, and with this sole treasure to keep her heart alive, she felt
that she possessed indefeasible rights against the world, and was ready to
defend them to the death.</p>
<p>“God gave me the child!” cried she. “He gave her in requital
of all things else which ye had taken from me. She is my happiness—she is
my torture, none the less! Pearl keeps me here in life! Pearl punishes me, too!
See ye not, she is the scarlet letter, only capable of being loved, and so
endowed with a millionfold the power of retribution for my sin? Ye shall not
take her! I will die first!”</p>
<p>“My poor woman,” said the not unkind old minister, “the child
shall be well cared for—far better than thou canst do for it.”</p>
<p>“God gave her into my keeping!” repeated Hester Prynne, raising her
voice almost to a shriek. “I will not give her up!” And here by a
sudden impulse, she turned to the young clergyman, Mr. Dimmesdale, at whom, up
to this moment, she had seemed hardly so much as once to direct her eyes.
“Speak thou for me!” cried she. “Thou wast my pastor, and
hadst charge of my soul, and knowest me better than these men can. I will not
lose the child! Speak for me! Thou knowest—for thou hast sympathies which
these men lack—thou knowest what is in my heart, and what are a
mother’s rights, and how much the stronger they are when that mother has
but her child and the scarlet letter! Look thou to it! I will not lose the
child! Look to it!”</p>
<p>At this wild and singular appeal, which indicated that Hester Prynne’s
situation had provoked her to little less than madness, the young minister at
once came forward, pale, and holding his hand over his heart, as was his custom
whenever his peculiarly nervous temperament was thrown into agitation. He
looked now more careworn and emaciated than as we described him at the scene of
Hester’s public ignominy; and whether it were his failing health, or
whatever the cause might be, his large dark eyes had a world of pain in their
troubled and melancholy depth.</p>
<p>“There is truth in what she says,” began the minister, with a voice
sweet, tremulous, but powerful, insomuch that the hall re-echoed and the hollow
armour rang with it—“truth in what Hester says, and in the feeling
which inspires her! God gave her the child, and gave her, too, an instinctive
knowledge of its nature and requirements—both seemingly so
peculiar—which no other mortal being can possess. And, moreover, is there
not a quality of awful sacredness in the relation between this mother and this
child?”</p>
<p>“Ay—how is that, good Master Dimmesdale?” interrupted the
Governor. “Make that plain, I pray you!”</p>
<p>“It must be even so,” resumed the minister. “For, if we deem
it otherwise, do we not thereby say that the Heavenly Father, the creator of
all flesh, hath lightly recognised a deed of sin, and made of no account the
distinction between unhallowed lust and holy love? This child of its
father’s guilt and its mother’s shame has come from the hand of
God, to work in many ways upon her heart, who pleads so earnestly and with such
bitterness of spirit the right to keep her. It was meant for a
blessing—for the one blessing of her life! It was meant, doubtless, the
mother herself hath told us, for a retribution, too; a torture to be felt at
many an unthought-of moment; a pang, a sting, an ever-recurring agony, in the
midst of a troubled joy! Hath she not expressed this thought in the garb of the
poor child, so forcibly reminding us of that red symbol which sears her
bosom?”</p>
<p>“Well said again!” cried good Mr. Wilson. “I feared the woman
had no better thought than to make a mountebank of her child!”</p>
<p>“Oh, not so!—not so!” continued Mr. Dimmesdale. “She
recognises, believe me, the solemn miracle which God hath wrought in the
existence of that child. And may she feel, too—what, methinks, is the
very truth—that this boon was meant, above all things else, to keep the
mother’s soul alive, and to preserve her from blacker depths of sin into
which Satan might else have sought to plunge her! Therefore it is good for this
poor, sinful woman, that she hath an infant immortality, a being capable of
eternal joy or sorrow, confided to her care—to be trained up by her to
righteousness, to remind her, at every moment, of her fall, but yet to teach
her, as if it were by the Creator’s sacred pledge, that, if she bring the
child to heaven, the child also will bring its parents thither! Herein is the
sinful mother happier than the sinful father. For Hester Prynne’s sake,
then, and no less for the poor child’s sake, let us leave them as
Providence hath seen fit to place them!”</p>
<p>“You speak, my friend, with a strange earnestness,” said old Roger
Chillingworth, smiling at him.</p>
<p>“And there is a weighty import in what my young brother hath
spoken,” added the Rev. Mr. Wilson.</p>
<p>“What say you, worshipful Master Bellingham? Hath he not pleaded well for
the poor woman?”</p>
<p>“Indeed hath he,” answered the magistrate; “and hath adduced
such arguments, that we will even leave the matter as it now stands; so long,
at least, as there shall be no further scandal in the woman. Care must be had
nevertheless, to put the child to due and stated examination in the catechism,
at thy hands or Master Dimmesdale’s. Moreover, at a proper season, the
tithing-men must take heed that she go both to school and to meeting.”</p>
<p>The young minister, on ceasing to speak had withdrawn a few steps from the
group, and stood with his face partially concealed in the heavy folds of the
window-curtain; while the shadow of his figure, which the sunlight cast upon
the floor, was tremulous with the vehemence of his appeal. Pearl, that wild and
flighty little elf stole softly towards him, and taking his hand in the grasp
of both her own, laid her cheek against it; a caress so tender, and withal so
unobtrusive, that her mother, who was looking on, asked herself—“Is
that my Pearl?” Yet she knew that there was love in the child’s
heart, although it mostly revealed itself in passion, and hardly twice in her
lifetime had been softened by such gentleness as now. The minister—for,
save the long-sought regards of woman, nothing is sweeter than these marks of
childish preference, accorded spontaneously by a spiritual instinct, and
therefore seeming to imply in us something truly worthy to be loved—the
minister looked round, laid his hand on the child’s head, hesitated an
instant, and then kissed her brow. Little Pearl’s unwonted mood of
sentiment lasted no longer; she laughed, and went capering down the hall so
airily, that old Mr. Wilson raised a question whether even her tiptoes touched
the floor.</p>
<p>“The little baggage hath witchcraft in her, I profess,” said he to
Mr. Dimmesdale. “She needs no old woman’s broomstick to fly
withal!”</p>
<p>“A strange child!” remarked old Roger Chillingworth. “It is
easy to see the mother’s part in her. Would it be beyond a
philosopher’s research, think ye, gentlemen, to analyse that
child’s nature, and, from it make a mould, to give a shrewd guess at the
father?”</p>
<p>“Nay; it would be sinful, in such a question, to follow the clue of
profane philosophy,” said Mr. Wilson. “Better to fast and pray upon
it; and still better, it may be, to leave the mystery as we find it, unless
Providence reveal it of its own accord. Thereby, every good Christian man hath
a title to show a father’s kindness towards the poor, deserted
babe.”</p>
<p>The affair being so satisfactorily concluded, Hester Prynne, with Pearl,
departed from the house. As they descended the steps, it is averred that the
lattice of a chamber-window was thrown open, and forth into the sunny day was
thrust the face of Mistress Hibbins, Governor Bellingham’s
bitter-tempered sister, and the same who, a few years later, was executed as a
witch.</p>
<p>“Hist, hist!” said she, while her ill-omened physiognomy seemed to
cast a shadow over the cheerful newness of the house. “Wilt thou go with
us tonight? There will be a merry company in the forest; and I well-nigh
promised the Black Man that comely Hester Prynne should make one.”</p>
<p>“Make my excuse to him, so please you!” answered Hester, with a
triumphant smile. “I must tarry at home, and keep watch over my little
Pearl. Had they taken her from me, I would willingly have gone with thee into
the forest, and signed my name in the Black Man’s book too, and that with
mine own blood!”</p>
<p>“We shall have thee there anon!” said the witch-lady, frowning, as
she drew back her head.</p>
<p>But here—if we suppose this interview betwixt Mistress Hibbins and Hester
Prynne to be authentic, and not a parable—was already an illustration of
the young minister’s argument against sundering the relation of a fallen
mother to the offspring of her frailty. Even thus early had the child saved her
from Satan’s snare.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap09"></SPAN>IX.<br/> THE LEECH</h2>
<p>Under the appellation of Roger Chillingworth, the reader will remember, was
hidden another name, which its former wearer had resolved should never more be
spoken. It has been related, how, in the crowd that witnessed Hester
Prynne’s ignominious exposure, stood a man, elderly, travel-worn, who,
just emerging from the perilous wilderness, beheld the woman, in whom he hoped
to find embodied the warmth and cheerfulness of home, set up as a type of sin
before the people. Her matronly fame was trodden under all men’s feet.
Infamy was babbling around her in the public market-place. For her kindred,
should the tidings ever reach them, and for the companions of her unspotted
life, there remained nothing but the contagion of her dishonour; which would
not fail to be distributed in strict accordance and proportion with the
intimacy and sacredness of their previous relationship. Then why—since
the choice was with himself—should the individual, whose connexion with
the fallen woman had been the most intimate and sacred of them all, come
forward to vindicate his claim to an inheritance so little desirable? He
resolved not to be pilloried beside her on her pedestal of shame. Unknown to
all but Hester Prynne, and possessing the lock and key of her silence, he chose
to withdraw his name from the roll of mankind, and, as regarded his former ties
and interest, to vanish out of life as completely as if he indeed lay at the
bottom of the ocean, whither rumour had long ago consigned him. This purpose
once effected, new interests would immediately spring up, and likewise a new
purpose; dark, it is true, if not guilty, but of force enough to engage the
full strength of his faculties.</p>
<p>In pursuance of this resolve, he took up his residence in the Puritan town as
Roger Chillingworth, without other introduction than the learning and
intelligence of which he possessed more than a common measure. As his studies,
at a previous period of his life, had made him extensively acquainted with the
medical science of the day, it was as a physician that he presented himself and
as such was cordially received. Skilful men, of the medical and chirurgical
profession, were of rare occurrence in the colony. They seldom, it would
appear, partook of the religious zeal that brought other emigrants across the
Atlantic. In their researches into the human frame, it may be that the higher
and more subtle faculties of such men were materialised, and that they lost the
spiritual view of existence amid the intricacies of that wondrous mechanism,
which seemed to involve art enough to comprise all of life within itself. At
all events, the health of the good town of Boston, so far as medicine had aught
to do with it, had hitherto lain in the guardianship of an aged deacon and
apothecary, whose piety and godly deportment were stronger testimonials in his
favour than any that he could have produced in the shape of a diploma. The only
surgeon was one who combined the occasional exercise of that noble art with the
daily and habitual flourish of a razor. To such a professional body Roger
Chillingworth was a brilliant acquisition. He soon manifested his familiarity
with the ponderous and imposing machinery of antique physic; in which every
remedy contained a multitude of far-fetched and heterogeneous ingredients, as
elaborately compounded as if the proposed result had been the Elixir of Life.
In his Indian captivity, moreover, he had gained much knowledge of the
properties of native herbs and roots; nor did he conceal from his patients that
these simple medicines, Nature’s boon to the untutored savage, had quite
as large a share of his own confidence as the European Pharmacopœia, which so
many learned doctors had spent centuries in elaborating.</p>
<p>This learned stranger was exemplary as regarded at least the outward forms of a
religious life; and early after his arrival, had chosen for his spiritual guide
the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale. The young divine, whose scholar-like renown still
lived in Oxford, was considered by his more fervent admirers as little less
than a heavenly ordained apostle, destined, should he live and labour for the
ordinary term of life, to do as great deeds, for the now feeble New England
Church, as the early Fathers had achieved for the infancy of the Christian
faith. About this period, however, the health of Mr. Dimmesdale had evidently
begun to fail. By those best acquainted with his habits, the paleness of the
young minister’s cheek was accounted for by his too earnest devotion to
study, his scrupulous fulfilment of parochial duty, and more than all, to the
fasts and vigils of which he made a frequent practice, in order to keep the
grossness of this earthly state from clogging and obscuring his spiritual lamp.
Some declared, that if Mr. Dimmesdale were really going to die, it was cause
enough that the world was not worthy to be any longer trodden by his feet. He
himself, on the other hand, with characteristic humility, avowed his belief
that if Providence should see fit to remove him, it would be because of his own
unworthiness to perform its humblest mission here on earth. With all this
difference of opinion as to the cause of his decline, there could be no
question of the fact. His form grew emaciated; his voice, though still rich and
sweet, had a certain melancholy prophecy of decay in it; he was often observed,
on any slight alarm or other sudden accident, to put his hand over his heart
with first a flush and then a paleness, indicative of pain.</p>
<p>Such was the young clergyman’s condition, and so imminent the prospect
that his dawning light would be extinguished, all untimely, when Roger
Chillingworth made his advent to the town. His first entry on the scene, few
people could tell whence, dropping down as it were out of the sky or starting
from the nether earth, had an aspect of mystery, which was easily heightened to
the miraculous. He was now known to be a man of skill; it was observed that he
gathered herbs and the blossoms of wild-flowers, and dug up roots and plucked
off twigs from the forest-trees like one acquainted with hidden virtues in what
was valueless to common eyes. He was heard to speak of Sir Kenelm Digby and
other famous men—whose scientific attainments were esteemed hardly less
than supernatural—as having been his correspondents or associates. Why,
with such rank in the learned world, had he come hither? What, could he, whose
sphere was in great cities, be seeking in the wilderness? In answer to this
query, a rumour gained ground—and however absurd, was entertained by some
very sensible people—that Heaven had wrought an absolute miracle, by
transporting an eminent Doctor of Physic from a German university bodily
through the air and setting him down at the door of Mr. Dimmesdale’s
study! Individuals of wiser faith, indeed, who knew that Heaven promotes its
purposes without aiming at the stage-effect of what is called miraculous
interposition, were inclined to see a providential hand in Roger
Chillingworth’s so opportune arrival.</p>
<p>This idea was countenanced by the strong interest which the physician ever
manifested in the young clergyman; he attached himself to him as a parishioner,
and sought to win a friendly regard and confidence from his naturally reserved
sensibility. He expressed great alarm at his pastor’s state of health,
but was anxious to attempt the cure, and, if early undertaken, seemed not
despondent of a favourable result. The elders, the deacons, the motherly dames,
and the young and fair maidens of Mr. Dimmesdale’s flock, were alike
importunate that he should make trial of the physician’s frankly offered
skill. Mr. Dimmesdale gently repelled their entreaties.</p>
<p>“I need no medicine,” said he.</p>
<p>But how could the young minister say so, when, with every successive Sabbath,
his cheek was paler and thinner, and his voice more tremulous than
before—when it had now become a constant habit, rather than a casual
gesture, to press his hand over his heart? Was he weary of his labours? Did he
wish to die? These questions were solemnly propounded to Mr. Dimmesdale by the
elder ministers of Boston, and the deacons of his church, who, to use their own
phrase, “dealt with him,” on the sin of rejecting the aid which
Providence so manifestly held out. He listened in silence, and finally promised
to confer with the physician.</p>
<p>“Were it God’s will,” said the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, when,
in fulfilment of this pledge, he requested old Roger Chillingworth’s
professional advice, “I could be well content that my labours, and my
sorrows, and my sins, and my pains, should shortly end with me, and what is
earthly of them be buried in my grave, and the spiritual go with me to my
eternal state, rather than that you should put your skill to the proof in my
behalf.”</p>
<p>“Ah,” replied Roger Chillingworth, with that quietness, which,
whether imposed or natural, marked all his deportment, “it is thus that a
young clergyman is apt to speak. Youthful men, not having taken a deep root,
give up their hold of life so easily! And saintly men, who walk with God on
earth, would fain be away, to walk with him on the golden pavements of the New
Jerusalem.”</p>
<p>“Nay,” rejoined the young minister, putting his hand to his heart,
with a flush of pain flitting over his brow, “were I worthier to walk
there, I could be better content to toil here.”</p>
<p>“Good men ever interpret themselves too meanly,” said the
physician.</p>
<p>In this manner, the mysterious old Roger Chillingworth became the medical
adviser of the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale. As not only the disease interested the
physician, but he was strongly moved to look into the character and qualities
of the patient, these two men, so different in age, came gradually to spend
much time together. For the sake of the minister’s health, and to enable
the leech to gather plants with healing balm in them, they took long walks on
the sea-shore, or in the forest; mingling various walks with the splash and
murmur of the waves, and the solemn wind-anthem among the tree-tops. Often,
likewise, one was the guest of the other in his place of study and retirement.
There was a fascination for the minister in the company of the man of science,
in whom he recognised an intellectual cultivation of no moderate depth or
scope; together with a range and freedom of ideas, that he would have vainly
looked for among the members of his own profession. In truth, he was startled,
if not shocked, to find this attribute in the physician. Mr. Dimmesdale was a
true priest, a true religionist, with the reverential sentiment largely
developed, and an order of mind that impelled itself powerfully along the track
of a creed, and wore its passage continually deeper with the lapse of time. In
no state of society would he have been what is called a man of liberal views;
it would always be essential to his peace to feel the pressure of a faith about
him, supporting, while it confined him within its iron framework. Not the less,
however, though with a tremulous enjoyment, did he feel the occasional relief
of looking at the universe through the medium of another kind of intellect than
those with which he habitually held converse. It was as if a window were thrown
open, admitting a freer atmosphere into the close and stifled study, where his
life was wasting itself away, amid lamp-light, or obstructed day-beams, and the
musty fragrance, be it sensual or moral, that exhales from books. But the air
was too fresh and chill to be long breathed with comfort. So the minister, and
the physician with him, withdrew again within the limits of what their Church
defined as orthodox.</p>
<p>Thus Roger Chillingworth scrutinised his patient carefully, both as he saw him
in his ordinary life, keeping an accustomed pathway in the range of thoughts
familiar to him, and as he appeared when thrown amidst other moral scenery, the
novelty of which might call out something new to the surface of his character.
He deemed it essential, it would seem, to know the man, before attempting to do
him good. Wherever there is a heart and an intellect, the diseases of the
physical frame are tinged with the peculiarities of these. In Arthur
Dimmesdale, thought and imagination were so active, and sensibility so intense,
that the bodily infirmity would be likely to have its groundwork there. So
Roger Chillingworth—the man of skill, the kind and friendly
physician—strove to go deep into his patient’s bosom, delving among
his principles, prying into his recollections, and probing everything with a
cautious touch, like a treasure-seeker in a dark cavern. Few secrets can escape
an investigator, who has opportunity and licence to undertake such a quest, and
skill to follow it up. A man burdened with a secret should especially avoid the
intimacy of his physician. If the latter possess native sagacity, and a
nameless something more,—let us call it intuition; if he show no
intrusive egotism, nor disagreeable prominent characteristics of his own; if he
have the power, which must be born with him, to bring his mind into such
affinity with his patient’s, that this last shall unawares have spoken
what he imagines himself only to have thought; if such revelations be received
without tumult, and acknowledged not so often by an uttered sympathy as by
silence, an inarticulate breath, and here and there a word to indicate that all
is understood; if to these qualifications of a confidant be joined the
advantages afforded by his recognised character as a physician;—then, at
some inevitable moment, will the soul of the sufferer be dissolved, and flow
forth in a dark but transparent stream, bringing all its mysteries into the
daylight.</p>
<p>Roger Chillingworth possessed all, or most, of the attributes above enumerated.
Nevertheless, time went on; a kind of intimacy, as we have said, grew up
between these two cultivated minds, which had as wide a field as the whole
sphere of human thought and study to meet upon; they discussed every topic of
ethics and religion, of public affairs, and private character; they talked
much, on both sides, of matters that seemed personal to themselves; and yet no
secret, such as the physician fancied must exist there, ever stole out of the
minister’s consciousness into his companion’s ear. The latter had
his suspicions, indeed, that even the nature of Mr. Dimmesdale’s bodily
disease had never fairly been revealed to him. It was a strange reserve!</p>
<p>After a time, at a hint from Roger Chillingworth, the friends of Mr. Dimmesdale
effected an arrangement by which the two were lodged in the same house; so that
every ebb and flow of the minister’s life-tide might pass under the eye
of his anxious and attached physician. There was much joy throughout the town
when this greatly desirable object was attained. It was held to be the best
possible measure for the young clergyman’s welfare; unless, indeed, as
often urged by such as felt authorised to do so, he had selected some one of
the many blooming damsels, spiritually devoted to him, to become his devoted
wife. This latter step, however, there was no present prospect that Arthur
Dimmesdale would be prevailed upon to take; he rejected all suggestions of the
kind, as if priestly celibacy were one of his articles of Church discipline.
Doomed by his own choice, therefore, as Mr. Dimmesdale so evidently was, to eat
his unsavoury morsel always at another’s board, and endure the life-long
chill which must be his lot who seeks to warm himself only at another’s
fireside, it truly seemed that this sagacious, experienced, benevolent old
physician, with his concord of paternal and reverential love for the young
pastor, was the very man, of all mankind, to be constantly within reach of his
voice.</p>
<p>The new abode of the two friends was with a pious widow, of good social rank,
who dwelt in a house covering pretty nearly the site on which the venerable
structure of King’s Chapel has since been built. It had the graveyard,
originally Isaac Johnson’s home-field, on one side, and so was well
adapted to call up serious reflections, suited to their respective employments,
in both minister and man of physic. The motherly care of the good widow
assigned to Mr. Dimmesdale a front apartment, with a sunny exposure, and heavy
window-curtains, to create a noontide shadow when desirable. The walls were
hung round with tapestry, said to be from the Gobelin looms, and, at all
events, representing the Scriptural story of David and Bathsheba, and Nathan
the Prophet, in colours still unfaded, but which made the fair woman of the
scene almost as grimly picturesque as the woe-denouncing seer. Here the pale
clergyman piled up his library, rich with parchment-bound folios of the
Fathers, and the lore of Rabbis, and monkish erudition, of which the Protestant
divines, even while they vilified and decried that class of writers, were yet
constrained often to avail themselves. On the other side of the house, old
Roger Chillingworth arranged his study and laboratory: not such as a modern man
of science would reckon even tolerably complete, but provided with a distilling
apparatus and the means of compounding drugs and chemicals, which the practised
alchemist knew well how to turn to purpose. With such commodiousness of
situation, these two learned persons sat themselves down, each in his own
domain, yet familiarly passing from one apartment to the other, and bestowing a
mutual and not incurious inspection into one another’s business.</p>
<p>And the Reverend Arthur Dimmesdale’s best discerning friends, as we have
intimated, very reasonably imagined that the hand of Providence had done all
this for the purpose—besought in so many public and domestic and secret
prayers—of restoring the young minister to health. But, it must now be
said, another portion of the community had latterly begun to take its own view
of the relation betwixt Mr. Dimmesdale and the mysterious old physician. When
an uninstructed multitude attempts to see with its eyes, it is exceedingly apt
to be deceived. When, however, it forms its judgment, as it usually does, on
the intuitions of its great and warm heart, the conclusions thus attained are
often so profound and so unerring as to possess the character of truth
supernaturally revealed. The people, in the case of which we speak, could
justify its prejudice against Roger Chillingworth by no fact or argument worthy
of serious refutation. There was an aged handicraftsman, it is true, who had
been a citizen of London at the period of Sir Thomas Overbury’s murder,
now some thirty years agone; he testified to having seen the physician, under
some other name, which the narrator of the story had now forgotten, in company
with Dr. Forman, the famous old conjurer, who was implicated in the affair of
Overbury. Two or three individuals hinted that the man of skill, during his
Indian captivity, had enlarged his medical attainments by joining in the
incantations of the savage priests, who were universally acknowledged to be
powerful enchanters, often performing seemingly miraculous cures by their skill
in the black art. A large number—and many of these were persons of such
sober sense and practical observation that their opinions would have been
valuable in other matters—affirmed that Roger Chillingworth’s
aspect had undergone a remarkable change while he had dwelt in town, and
especially since his abode with Mr. Dimmesdale. At first, his expression had
been calm, meditative, scholar-like. Now there was something ugly and evil in
his face, which they had not previously noticed, and which grew still the more
obvious to sight the oftener they looked upon him. According to the vulgar
idea, the fire in his laboratory had been brought from the lower regions, and
was fed with infernal fuel; and so, as might be expected, his visage was
getting sooty with the smoke.</p>
<p>To sum up the matter, it grew to be a widely diffused opinion that the Rev.
Arthur Dimmesdale, like many other personages of special sanctity, in all ages
of the Christian world, was haunted either by Satan himself or Satan’s
emissary, in the guise of old Roger Chillingworth. This diabolical agent had
the Divine permission, for a season, to burrow into the clergyman’s
intimacy, and plot against his soul. No sensible man, it was confessed, could
doubt on which side the victory would turn. The people looked, with an unshaken
hope, to see the minister come forth out of the conflict transfigured with the
glory which he would unquestionably win. Meanwhile, nevertheless, it was sad to
think of the perchance mortal agony through which he must struggle towards his
triumph.</p>
<p>Alas! to judge from the gloom and terror in the depth of the poor
minister’s eyes, the battle was a sore one, and the victory anything but
secure.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap10"></SPAN>X.<br/> THE LEECH AND HIS PATIENT</h2>
<p>Old Roger Chillingworth, throughout life, had been calm in temperament, kindly,
though not of warm affections, but ever, and in all his relations with the
world, a pure and upright man. He had begun an investigation, as he imagined,
with the severe and equal integrity of a judge, desirous only of truth, even as
if the question involved no more than the air-drawn lines and figures of a
geometrical problem, instead of human passions, and wrongs inflicted on
himself. But, as he proceeded, a terrible fascination, a kind of fierce, though
still calm, necessity, seized the old man within its gripe, and never set him
free again until he had done all its bidding. He now dug into the poor
clergyman’s heart, like a miner searching for gold; or, rather, like a
sexton delving into a grave, possibly in quest of a jewel that had been buried
on the dead man’s bosom, but likely to find nothing save mortality and
corruption. Alas, for his own soul, if these were what he sought!</p>
<p>Sometimes a light glimmered out of the physician’s eyes, burning blue and
ominous, like the reflection of a furnace, or, let us say, like one of those
gleams of ghastly fire that darted from Bunyan’s awful doorway in the
hillside, and quivered on the pilgrim’s face. The soil where this dark
miner was working had perchance shown indications that encouraged him.</p>
<p>“This man,” said he, at one such moment, to himself, “pure as
they deem him—all spiritual as he seems—hath inherited a strong
animal nature from his father or his mother. Let us dig a little further in the
direction of this vein!”</p>
<p>Then after long search into the minister’s dim interior, and turning over
many precious materials, in the shape of high aspirations for the welfare of
his race, warm love of souls, pure sentiments, natural piety, strengthened by
thought and study, and illuminated by revelation—all of which invaluable
gold was perhaps no better than rubbish to the seeker—he would turn back,
discouraged, and begin his quest towards another point. He groped along as
stealthily, with as cautious a tread, and as wary an outlook, as a thief
entering a chamber where a man lies only half asleep—or, it may be, broad
awake—with purpose to steal the very treasure which this man guards as
the apple of his eye. In spite of his premeditated carefulness, the floor would
now and then creak; his garments would rustle; the shadow of his presence, in a
forbidden proximity, would be thrown across his victim. In other words, Mr.
Dimmesdale, whose sensibility of nerve often produced the effect of spiritual
intuition, would become vaguely aware that something inimical to his peace had
thrust itself into relation with him. But Old Roger Chillingworth, too, had
perceptions that were almost intuitive; and when the minister threw his
startled eyes towards him, there the physician sat; his kind, watchful,
sympathising, but never intrusive friend.</p>
<p>Yet Mr. Dimmesdale would perhaps have seen this individual’s character
more perfectly, if a certain morbidness, to which sick hearts are liable, had
not rendered him suspicious of all mankind. Trusting no man as his friend, he
could not recognize his enemy when the latter actually appeared. He therefore
still kept up a familiar intercourse with him, daily receiving the old
physician in his study, or visiting the laboratory, and, for recreation’s
sake, watching the processes by which weeds were converted into drugs of
potency.</p>
<p>One day, leaning his forehead on his hand, and his elbow on the sill of the
open window, that looked towards the graveyard, he talked with Roger
Chillingworth, while the old man was examining a bundle of unsightly plants.</p>
<p>“Where,” asked he, with a look askance at them—for it was the
clergyman’s peculiarity that he seldom, now-a-days, looked straight forth
at any object, whether human or inanimate, “where, my kind doctor, did
you gather those herbs, with such a dark, flabby leaf?”</p>
<p>“Even in the graveyard here at hand,” answered the physician,
continuing his employment. “They are new to me. I found them growing on a
grave, which bore no tombstone, no other memorial of the dead man, save these
ugly weeds, that have taken upon themselves to keep him in remembrance. They
grew out of his heart, and typify, it may be, some hideous secret that was
buried with him, and which he had done better to confess during his
lifetime.”</p>
<p>“Perchance,” said Mr. Dimmesdale, “he earnestly desired it,
but could not.”</p>
<p>“And wherefore?” rejoined the physician.</p>
<p>“Wherefore not; since all the powers of nature call so earnestly for the
confession of sin, that these black weeds have sprung up out of a buried heart,
to make manifest, an outspoken crime?”</p>
<p>“That, good sir, is but a phantasy of yours,” replied the minister.
“There can be, if I forbode aright, no power, short of the Divine mercy,
to disclose, whether by uttered words, or by type or emblem, the secrets that
may be buried in the human heart. The heart, making itself guilty of such
secrets, must perforce hold them, until the day when all hidden things shall be
revealed. Nor have I so read or interpreted Holy Writ, as to understand that
the disclosure of human thoughts and deeds, then to be made, is intended as a
part of the retribution. That, surely, were a shallow view of it. No; these
revelations, unless I greatly err, are meant merely to promote the intellectual
satisfaction of all intelligent beings, who will stand waiting, on that day, to
see the dark problem of this life made plain. A knowledge of men’s hearts
will be needful to the completest solution of that problem. And, I conceive
moreover, that the hearts holding such miserable secrets as you speak of, will
yield them up, at that last day, not with reluctance, but with a joy
unutterable.”</p>
<p>“Then why not reveal it here?” asked Roger Chillingworth, glancing
quietly aside at the minister. “Why should not the guilty ones sooner
avail themselves of this unutterable solace?”</p>
<p>“They mostly do,” said the clergyman, griping hard at his breast,
as if afflicted with an importunate throb of pain. “Many, many a poor
soul hath given its confidence to me, not only on the death-bed, but while
strong in life, and fair in reputation. And ever, after such an outpouring, oh,
what a relief have I witnessed in those sinful brethren! even as in one who at
last draws free air, after a long stifling with his own polluted breath. How
can it be otherwise? Why should a wretched man—guilty, we will say, of
murder—prefer to keep the dead corpse buried in his own heart, rather
than fling it forth at once, and let the universe take care of it!”</p>
<p>“Yet some men bury their secrets thus,” observed the calm
physician.</p>
<p>“True; there are such men,” answered Mr. Dimmesdale. “But not
to suggest more obvious reasons, it may be that they are kept silent by the
very constitution of their nature. Or—can we not suppose it?—guilty
as they may be, retaining, nevertheless, a zeal for God’s glory and
man’s welfare, they shrink from displaying themselves black and filthy in
the view of men; because, thenceforward, no good can be achieved by them; no
evil of the past be redeemed by better service. So, to their own unutterable
torment, they go about among their fellow-creatures, looking pure as new-fallen
snow, while their hearts are all speckled and spotted with iniquity of which
they cannot rid themselves.”</p>
<p>“These men deceive themselves,” said Roger Chillingworth, with
somewhat more emphasis than usual, and making a slight gesture with his
forefinger. “They fear to take up the shame that rightfully belongs to
them. Their love for man, their zeal for God’s service—these holy
impulses may or may not coexist in their hearts with the evil inmates to which
their guilt has unbarred the door, and which must needs propagate a hellish
breed within them. But, if they seek to glorify God, let them not lift
heavenward their unclean hands! If they would serve their fellowmen, let them
do it by making manifest the power and reality of conscience, in constraining
them to penitential self-abasement! Would thou have me to believe, O wise and
pious friend, that a false show can be better—can be more for God’s
glory, or man’s welfare—than God’s own truth? Trust me, such
men deceive themselves!”</p>
<p>“It may be so,” said the young clergyman, indifferently, as waiving
a discussion that he considered irrelevant or unseasonable. He had a ready
faculty, indeed, of escaping from any topic that agitated his too sensitive and
nervous temperament.—“But, now, I would ask of my well-skilled
physician, whether, in good sooth, he deems me to have profited by his kindly
care of this weak frame of mine?”</p>
<p>Before Roger Chillingworth could answer, they heard the clear, wild laughter of
a young child’s voice, proceeding from the adjacent burial-ground.
Looking instinctively from the open window—for it was
summer-time—the minister beheld Hester Prynne and little Pearl passing
along the footpath that traversed the enclosure. Pearl looked as beautiful as
the day, but was in one of those moods of perverse merriment which, whenever
they occurred, seemed to remove her entirely out of the sphere of sympathy or
human contact. She now skipped irreverently from one grave to another; until
coming to the broad, flat, armorial tombstone of a departed
worthy—perhaps of Isaac Johnson himself—she began to dance upon it.
In reply to her mother’s command and entreaty that she would behave more
decorously, little Pearl paused to gather the prickly burrs from a tall burdock
which grew beside the tomb. Taking a handful of these, she arranged them along
the lines of the scarlet letter that decorated the maternal bosom, to which the
burrs, as their nature was, tenaciously adhered. Hester did not pluck them off.</p>
<p>Roger Chillingworth had by this time approached the window and smiled grimly
down.</p>
<p>“There is no law, nor reverence for authority, no regard for human
ordinances or opinions, right or wrong, mixed up with that child’s
composition,” remarked he, as much to himself as to his companion.
“I saw her, the other day, bespatter the Governor himself with water at
the cattle-trough in Spring Lane. What, in heaven’s name, is she? Is the
imp altogether evil? Hath she affections? Hath she any discoverable principle
of being?”</p>
<p>“None, save the freedom of a broken law,” answered Mr. Dimmesdale,
in a quiet way, as if he had been discussing the point within himself,
“Whether capable of good, I know not.”</p>
<p>The child probably overheard their voices, for, looking up to the window with a
bright, but naughty smile of mirth and intelligence, she threw one of the
prickly burrs at the Rev. Mr. Dimmesdale. The sensitive clergyman shrank, with
nervous dread, from the light missile. Detecting his emotion, Pearl clapped her
little hands in the most extravagant ecstacy. Hester Prynne, likewise, had
involuntarily looked up, and all these four persons, old and young, regarded
one another in silence, till the child laughed aloud, and
shouted—“Come away, mother! Come away, or yonder old black man will
catch you! He hath got hold of the minister already. Come away, mother or he
will catch you! But he cannot catch little Pearl!”</p>
<p>So she drew her mother away, skipping, dancing, and frisking fantastically
among the hillocks of the dead people, like a creature that had nothing in
common with a bygone and buried generation, nor owned herself akin to it. It
was as if she had been made afresh out of new elements, and must perforce be
permitted to live her own life, and be a law unto herself without her
eccentricities being reckoned to her for a crime.</p>
<p>“There goes a woman,” resumed Roger Chillingworth, after a pause,
“who, be her demerits what they may, hath none of that mystery of hidden
sinfulness which you deem so grievous to be borne. Is Hester Prynne the less
miserable, think you, for that scarlet letter on her breast?”</p>
<p>“I do verily believe it,” answered the clergyman.
“Nevertheless, I cannot answer for her. There was a look of pain in her
face which I would gladly have been spared the sight of. But still, methinks,
it must needs be better for the sufferer to be free to show his pain, as this
poor woman Hester is, than to cover it up in his heart.”</p>
<p>There was another pause, and the physician began anew to examine and arrange
the plants which he had gathered.</p>
<p>“You inquired of me, a little time agone,” said he, at length,
“my judgment as touching your health.”</p>
<p>“I did,” answered the clergyman, “and would gladly learn it.
Speak frankly, I pray you, be it for life or death.”</p>
<p>“Freely then, and plainly,” said the physician, still busy with his
plants, but keeping a wary eye on Mr. Dimmesdale, “the disorder is a
strange one; not so much in itself nor as outwardly manifested,—in so
far, at least as the symptoms have been laid open to my observation. Looking
daily at you, my good sir, and watching the tokens of your aspect now for
months gone by, I should deem you a man sore sick, it may be, yet not so sick
but that an instructed and watchful physician might well hope to cure you. But
I know not what to say, the disease is what I seem to know, yet know it
not.”</p>
<p>“You speak in riddles, learned sir,” said the pale minister,
glancing aside out of the window.</p>
<p>“Then, to speak more plainly,” continued the physician, “and
I crave pardon, sir, should it seem to require pardon, for this needful
plainness of my speech. Let me ask as your friend, as one having charge, under
Providence, of your life and physical well being, hath all the operation of
this disorder been fairly laid open and recounted to me?”</p>
<p>“How can you question it?” asked the minister. “Surely it
were child’s play to call in a physician and then hide the sore!”</p>
<p>“You would tell me, then, that I know all?” said Roger
Chillingworth, deliberately, and fixing an eye, bright with intense and
concentrated intelligence, on the minister’s face. “Be it so! But
again! He to whom only the outward and physical evil is laid open, knoweth,
oftentimes, but half the evil which he is called upon to cure. A bodily
disease, which we look upon as whole and entire within itself, may, after all,
be but a symptom of some ailment in the spiritual part. Your pardon once again,
good sir, if my speech give the shadow of offence. You, sir, of all men whom I
have known, are he whose body is the closest conjoined, and imbued, and
identified, so to speak, with the spirit whereof it is the instrument.”</p>
<p>“Then I need ask no further,” said the clergyman, somewhat hastily
rising from his chair. “You deal not, I take it, in medicine for the
soul!”</p>
<p>“Thus, a sickness,” continued Roger Chillingworth, going on, in an
unaltered tone, without heeding the interruption, but standing up and
confronting the emaciated and white-cheeked minister, with his low, dark, and
misshapen figure,—“a sickness, a sore place, if we may so call it,
in your spirit hath immediately its appropriate manifestation in your bodily
frame. Would you, therefore, that your physician heal the bodily evil? How may
this be unless you first lay open to him the wound or trouble in your
soul?”</p>
<p>“No, not to thee! not to an earthly physician!” cried Mr.
Dimmesdale, passionately, and turning his eyes, full and bright, and with a
kind of fierceness, on old Roger Chillingworth. “Not to thee! But, if it
be the soul’s disease, then do I commit myself to the one Physician of
the soul! He, if it stand with His good pleasure, can cure, or he can kill. Let
Him do with me as, in His justice and wisdom, He shall see good. But who art
thou, that meddlest in this matter? that dares thrust himself between the
sufferer and his God?”</p>
<p>With a frantic gesture he rushed out of the room.</p>
<p>“It is as well to have made this step,” said Roger Chillingworth to
himself, looking after the minister, with a grave smile. “There is
nothing lost. We shall be friends again anon. But see, now, how passion takes
hold upon this man, and hurrieth him out of himself! As with one passion so
with another. He hath done a wild thing ere now, this pious Master Dimmesdale,
in the hot passion of his heart.”</p>
<p>It proved not difficult to re-establish the intimacy of the two companions, on
the same footing and in the same degree as heretofore. The young clergyman,
after a few hours of privacy, was sensible that the disorder of his nerves had
hurried him into an unseemly outbreak of temper, which there had been nothing
in the physician’s words to excuse or palliate. He marvelled, indeed, at
the violence with which he had thrust back the kind old man, when merely
proffering the advice which it was his duty to bestow, and which the minister
himself had expressly sought. With these remorseful feelings, he lost no time
in making the amplest apologies, and besought his friend still to continue the
care which, if not successful in restoring him to health, had, in all
probability, been the means of prolonging his feeble existence to that hour.
Roger Chillingworth readily assented, and went on with his medical supervision
of the minister; doing his best for him, in all good faith, but always quitting
the patient’s apartment, at the close of the professional interview, with
a mysterious and puzzled smile upon his lips. This expression was invisible in
Mr. Dimmesdale’s presence, but grew strongly evident as the physician
crossed the threshold.</p>
<p>“A rare case,” he muttered. “I must needs look deeper into
it. A strange sympathy betwixt soul and body! Were it only for the art’s
sake, I must search this matter to the bottom.”</p>
<p>It came to pass, not long after the scene above recorded, that the Reverend Mr.
Dimmesdale, at noonday, and entirely unawares, fell into a deep, deep slumber,
sitting in his chair, with a large black-letter volume open before him on the
table. It must have been a work of vast ability in the somniferous school of
literature. The profound depth of the minister’s repose was the more
remarkable, inasmuch as he was one of those persons whose sleep ordinarily is
as light as fitful, and as easily scared away, as a small bird hopping on a
twig. To such an unwonted remoteness, however, had his spirit now withdrawn
into itself that he stirred not in his chair when old Roger Chillingworth,
without any extraordinary precaution, came into the room. The physician
advanced directly in front of his patient, laid his hand upon his bosom, and
thrust aside the vestment, that hitherto had always covered it even from the
professional eye.</p>
<p>Then, indeed, Mr. Dimmesdale shuddered, and slightly stirred.</p>
<p>After a brief pause, the physician turned away.</p>
<p>But with what a wild look of wonder, joy, and horror! With what a ghastly
rapture, as it were, too mighty to be expressed only by the eye and features,
and therefore bursting forth through the whole ugliness of his figure, and
making itself even riotously manifest by the extravagant gestures with which he
threw up his arms towards the ceiling, and stamped his foot upon the floor! Had
a man seen old Roger Chillingworth, at that moment of his ecstasy, he would
have had no need to ask how Satan comports himself when a precious human soul
is lost to heaven, and won into his kingdom.</p>
<p>But what distinguished the physician’s ecstasy from Satan’s was the
trait of wonder in it!</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap11"></SPAN>XI.<br/> THE INTERIOR OF A HEART</h2>
<p>After the incident last described, the intercourse between the clergyman and
the physician, though externally the same, was really of another character than
it had previously been. The intellect of Roger Chillingworth had now a
sufficiently plain path before it. It was not, indeed, precisely that which he
had laid out for himself to tread. Calm, gentle, passionless, as he appeared,
there was yet, we fear, a quiet depth of malice, hitherto latent, but active
now, in this unfortunate old man, which led him to imagine a more intimate
revenge than any mortal had ever wreaked upon an enemy. To make himself the one
trusted friend, to whom should be confided all the fear, the remorse, the
agony, the ineffectual repentance, the backward rush of sinful thoughts,
expelled in vain! All that guilty sorrow, hidden from the world, whose great
heart would have pitied and forgiven, to be revealed to him, the
Pitiless—to him, the Unforgiving! All that dark treasure to be lavished
on the very man, to whom nothing else could so adequately pay the debt of
vengeance!</p>
<p>The clergyman’s shy and sensitive reserve had balked this scheme. Roger
Chillingworth, however, was inclined to be hardly, if at all, less satisfied
with the aspect of affairs, which Providence—using the avenger and his
victim for its own purposes, and, perchance, pardoning, where it seemed most to
punish—had substituted for his black devices. A revelation, he could
almost say, had been granted to him. It mattered little for his object, whether
celestial or from what other region. By its aid, in all the subsequent
relations betwixt him and Mr. Dimmesdale, not merely the external presence, but
the very inmost soul of the latter, seemed to be brought out before his eyes,
so that he could see and comprehend its every movement. He became, thenceforth,
not a spectator only, but a chief actor in the poor minister’s interior
world. He could play upon him as he chose. Would he arouse him with a throb of
agony? The victim was for ever on the rack; it needed only to know the spring
that controlled the engine: and the physician knew it well. Would he startle
him with sudden fear? As at the waving of a magician’s wand, up rose a
grisly phantom—up rose a thousand phantoms—in many shapes, of
death, or more awful shame, all flocking round about the clergyman, and
pointing with their fingers at his breast!</p>
<p>All this was accomplished with a subtlety so perfect, that the minister, though
he had constantly a dim perception of some evil influence watching over him,
could never gain a knowledge of its actual nature. True, he looked doubtfully,
fearfully—even, at times, with horror and the bitterness of
hatred—at the deformed figure of the old physician. His gestures, his
gait, his grizzled beard, his slightest and most indifferent acts, the very
fashion of his garments, were odious in the clergyman’s sight; a token
implicitly to be relied on of a deeper antipathy in the breast of the latter
than he was willing to acknowledge to himself. For, as it was impossible to
assign a reason for such distrust and abhorrence, so Mr. Dimmesdale, conscious
that the poison of one morbid spot was infecting his heart’s entire
substance, attributed all his presentiments to no other cause. He took himself
to task for his bad sympathies in reference to Roger Chillingworth, disregarded
the lesson that he should have drawn from them, and did his best to root them
out. Unable to accomplish this, he nevertheless, as a matter of principle,
continued his habits of social familiarity with the old man, and thus gave him
constant opportunities for perfecting the purpose to which—poor forlorn
creature that he was, and more wretched than his victim—the avenger had
devoted himself.</p>
<p>While thus suffering under bodily disease, and gnawed and tortured by some
black trouble of the soul, and given over to the machinations of his deadliest
enemy, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale had achieved a brilliant popularity in his
sacred office. He won it indeed, in great part, by his sorrows. His
intellectual gifts, his moral perceptions, his power of experiencing and
communicating emotion, were kept in a state of preternatural activity by the
prick and anguish of his daily life. His fame, though still on its upward
slope, already overshadowed the soberer reputations of his fellow-clergymen,
eminent as several of them were. There are scholars among them, who had spent
more years in acquiring abstruse lore, connected with the divine profession,
than Mr. Dimmesdale had lived; and who might well, therefore, be more
profoundly versed in such solid and valuable attainments than their youthful
brother. There were men, too, of a sturdier texture of mind than his, and
endowed with a far greater share of shrewd, hard iron, or granite
understanding; which, duly mingled with a fair proportion of doctrinal
ingredient, constitutes a highly respectable, efficacious, and unamiable
variety of the clerical species. There were others again, true saintly fathers,
whose faculties had been elaborated by weary toil among their books, and by
patient thought, and etherealised, moreover, by spiritual communications with
the better world, into which their purity of life had almost introduced these
holy personages, with their garments of mortality still clinging to them. All
that they lacked was, the gift that descended upon the chosen disciples at
Pentecost, in tongues of flame; symbolising, it would seem, not the power of
speech in foreign and unknown languages, but that of addressing the whole human
brotherhood in the heart’s native language. These fathers, otherwise so
apostolic, lacked Heaven’s last and rarest attestation of their office,
the Tongue of Flame. They would have vainly sought—had they ever dreamed
of seeking—to express the highest truths through the humblest medium of
familiar words and images. Their voices came down, afar and indistinctly, from
the upper heights where they habitually dwelt.</p>
<p>Not improbably, it was to this latter class of men that Mr. Dimmesdale, by many
of his traits of character, naturally belonged. To the high mountain peaks of
faith and sanctity he would have climbed, had not the tendency been thwarted by
the burden, whatever it might be, of crime or anguish, beneath which it was his
doom to totter. It kept him down on a level with the lowest; him, the man of
ethereal attributes, whose voice the angels might else have listened to and
answered! But this very burden it was that gave him sympathies so intimate with
the sinful brotherhood of mankind; so that his heart vibrated in unison with
theirs, and received their pain into itself and sent its own throb of pain
through a thousand other hearts, in gushes of sad, persuasive eloquence.
Oftenest persuasive, but sometimes terrible! The people knew not the power that
moved them thus. They deemed the young clergyman a miracle of holiness. They
fancied him the mouth-piece of Heaven’s messages of wisdom, and rebuke,
and love. In their eyes, the very ground on which he trod was sanctified. The
virgins of his church grew pale around him, victims of a passion so imbued with
religious sentiment, that they imagined it to be all religion, and brought it
openly, in their white bosoms, as their most acceptable sacrifice before the
altar. The aged members of his flock, beholding Mr. Dimmesdale’s frame so
feeble, while they were themselves so rugged in their infirmity, believed that
he would go heavenward before them, and enjoined it upon their children that
their old bones should be buried close to their young pastor’s holy
grave. And all this time, perchance, when poor Mr. Dimmesdale was thinking of
his grave, he questioned with himself whether the grass would ever grow on it,
because an accursed thing must there be buried!</p>
<p>It is inconceivable, the agony with which this public veneration tortured him.
It was his genuine impulse to adore the truth, and to reckon all things
shadow-like, and utterly devoid of weight or value, that had not its divine
essence as the life within their life. Then what was he?—a
substance?—or the dimmest of all shadows? He longed to speak out from his
own pulpit at the full height of his voice, and tell the people what he was.
“I, whom you behold in these black garments of the priesthood—I,
who ascend the sacred desk, and turn my pale face heavenward, taking upon
myself to hold communion in your behalf with the Most High Omniscience—I,
in whose daily life you discern the sanctity of Enoch—I, whose footsteps,
as you suppose, leave a gleam along my earthly track, whereby the Pilgrims that
shall come after me may be guided to the regions of the blest—I, who have
laid the hand of baptism upon your children—I, who have breathed the
parting prayer over your dying friends, to whom the Amen sounded faintly from a
world which they had quitted—I, your pastor, whom you so reverence and
trust, am utterly a pollution and a lie!”</p>
<p>More than once, Mr. Dimmesdale had gone into the pulpit, with a purpose never
to come down its steps until he should have spoken words like the above. More
than once he had cleared his throat, and drawn in the long, deep, and tremulous
breath, which, when sent forth again, would come burdened with the black secret
of his soul. More than once—nay, more than a hundred times—he had
actually spoken! Spoken! But how? He had told his hearers that he was
altogether vile, a viler companion of the vilest, the worst of sinners, an
abomination, a thing of unimaginable iniquity, and that the only wonder was
that they did not see his wretched body shrivelled up before their eyes by the
burning wrath of the Almighty! Could there be plainer speech than this? Would
not the people start up in their seats, by a simultaneous impulse, and tear him
down out of the pulpit which he defiled? Not so, indeed! They heard it all, and
did but reverence him the more. They little guessed what deadly purport lurked
in those self-condemning words. “The godly youth!” said they among
themselves. “The saint on earth! Alas! if he discern such sinfulness in
his own white soul, what horrid spectacle would he behold in thine or
mine!” The minister well knew—subtle, but remorseful hypocrite that
he was!—the light in which his vague confession would be viewed. He had
striven to put a cheat upon himself by making the avowal of a guilty
conscience, but had gained only one other sin, and a self-acknowledged shame,
without the momentary relief of being self-deceived. He had spoken the very
truth, and transformed it into the veriest falsehood. And yet, by the
constitution of his nature, he loved the truth, and loathed the lie, as few men
ever did. Therefore, above all things else, he loathed his miserable self!</p>
<p>His inward trouble drove him to practices more in accordance with the old,
corrupted faith of Rome than with the better light of the church in which he
had been born and bred. In Mr. Dimmesdale’s secret closet, under lock and
key, there was a bloody scourge. Oftentimes, this Protestant and Puritan divine
had plied it on his own shoulders, laughing bitterly at himself the while, and
smiting so much the more pitilessly because of that bitter laugh. It was his
custom, too, as it has been that of many other pious Puritans, to
fast—not however, like them, in order to purify the body, and render it
the fitter medium of celestial illumination—but rigorously, and until his
knees trembled beneath him, as an act of penance. He kept vigils, likewise,
night after night, sometimes in utter darkness, sometimes with a glimmering
lamp, and sometimes, viewing his own face in a looking-glass, by the most
powerful light which he could throw upon it. He thus typified the constant
introspection wherewith he tortured, but could not purify himself. In these
lengthened vigils, his brain often reeled, and visions seemed to flit before
him; perhaps seen doubtfully, and by a faint light of their own, in the remote
dimness of the chamber, or more vividly and close beside him, within the
looking-glass. Now it was a herd of diabolic shapes, that grinned and mocked at
the pale minister, and beckoned him away with them; now a group of shining
angels, who flew upward heavily, as sorrow-laden, but grew more ethereal as
they rose. Now came the dead friends of his youth, and his white-bearded
father, with a saint-like frown, and his mother turning her face away as she
passed by. Ghost of a mother—thinnest fantasy of a mother—methinks
she might yet have thrown a pitying glance towards her son! And now, through
the chamber which these spectral thoughts had made so ghastly, glided Hester
Prynne leading along little Pearl, in her scarlet garb, and pointing her
forefinger, first at the scarlet letter on her bosom, and then at the
clergyman’s own breast.</p>
<p>None of these visions ever quite deluded him. At any moment, by an effort of
his will, he could discern substances through their misty lack of substance,
and convince himself that they were not solid in their nature, like yonder
table of carved oak, or that big, square, leather-bound and brazen-clasped
volume of divinity. But, for all that, they were, in one sense, the truest and
most substantial things which the poor minister now dealt with. It is the
unspeakable misery of a life so false as his, that it steals the pith and
substance out of whatever realities there are around us, and which were meant
by Heaven to be the spirit’s joy and nutriment. To the untrue man, the
whole universe is false—it is impalpable—it shrinks to nothing
within his grasp. And he himself in so far as he shows himself in a false
light, becomes a shadow, or, indeed, ceases to exist. The only truth that
continued to give Mr. Dimmesdale a real existence on this earth was the anguish
in his inmost soul, and the undissembled expression of it in his aspect. Had he
once found power to smile, and wear a face of gaiety, there would have been no
such man!</p>
<p>On one of those ugly nights, which we have faintly hinted at, but forborne to
picture forth, the minister started from his chair. A new thought had struck
him. There might be a moment’s peace in it. Attiring himself with as much
care as if it had been for public worship, and precisely in the same manner, he
stole softly down the staircase, undid the door, and issued forth.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap12"></SPAN>XII.<br/> THE MINISTER’S VIGIL</h2>
<p>Walking in the shadow of a dream, as it were, and perhaps actually under the
influence of a species of somnambulism, Mr. Dimmesdale reached the spot where,
now so long since, Hester Prynne had lived through her first hours of public
ignominy. The same platform or scaffold, black and weather-stained with the
storm or sunshine of seven long years, and foot-worn, too, with the tread of
many culprits who had since ascended it, remained standing beneath the balcony
of the meeting-house. The minister went up the steps.</p>
<p>It was an obscure night in early May. An unvaried pall of cloud muffled the
whole expanse of sky from zenith to horizon. If the same multitude which had
stood as eye-witnesses while Hester Prynne sustained her punishment could now
have been summoned forth, they would have discerned no face above the platform
nor hardly the outline of a human shape, in the dark grey of the midnight. But
the town was all asleep. There was no peril of discovery. The minister might
stand there, if it so pleased him, until morning should redden in the east,
without other risk than that the dank and chill night air would creep into his
frame, and stiffen his joints with rheumatism, and clog his throat with catarrh
and cough; thereby defrauding the expectant audience of tomorrow’s
prayer and sermon. No eye could see him, save that ever-wakeful one which had
seen him in his closet, wielding the bloody scourge. Why, then, had he come
hither? Was it but the mockery of penitence? A mockery, indeed, but in which
his soul trifled with itself! A mockery at which angels blushed and wept, while
fiends rejoiced with jeering laughter! He had been driven hither by the impulse
of that Remorse which dogged him everywhere, and whose own sister and closely
linked companion was that Cowardice which invariably drew him back, with her
tremulous gripe, just when the other impulse had hurried him to the verge of a
disclosure. Poor, miserable man! what right had infirmity like his to burden
itself with crime? Crime is for the iron-nerved, who have their choice either
to endure it, or, if it press too hard, to exert their fierce and savage
strength for a good purpose, and fling it off at once! This feeble and most
sensitive of spirits could do neither, yet continually did one thing or
another, which intertwined, in the same inextricable knot, the agony of
heaven-defying guilt and vain repentance.</p>
<p>And thus, while standing on the scaffold, in this vain show of expiation, Mr.
Dimmesdale was overcome with a great horror of mind, as if the universe were
gazing at a scarlet token on his naked breast, right over his heart. On that
spot, in very truth, there was, and there had long been, the gnawing and
poisonous tooth of bodily pain. Without any effort of his will, or power to
restrain himself, he shrieked aloud: an outcry that went pealing through the
night, and was beaten back from one house to another, and reverberated from the
hills in the background; as if a company of devils, detecting so much misery
and terror in it, had made a plaything of the sound, and were bandying it to
and fro.</p>
<p>“It is done!” muttered the minister, covering his face with his
hands. “The whole town will awake and hurry forth, and find me
here!”</p>
<p>But it was not so. The shriek had perhaps sounded with a far greater power, to
his own startled ears, than it actually possessed. The town did not awake; or,
if it did, the drowsy slumberers mistook the cry either for something frightful
in a dream, or for the noise of witches, whose voices, at that period, were
often heard to pass over the settlements or lonely cottages, as they rode with
Satan through the air. The clergyman, therefore, hearing no symptoms of
disturbance, uncovered his eyes and looked about him. At one of the
chamber-windows of Governor Bellingham’s mansion, which stood at some
distance, on the line of another street, he beheld the appearance of the old
magistrate himself with a lamp in his hand a white night-cap on his head, and a
long white gown enveloping his figure. He looked like a ghost evoked
unseasonably from the grave. The cry had evidently startled him. At another
window of the same house, moreover appeared old Mistress Hibbins, the
Governor’s sister, also with a lamp, which even thus far off revealed the
expression of her sour and discontented face. She thrust forth her head from
the lattice, and looked anxiously upward. Beyond the shadow of a doubt, this
venerable witch-lady had heard Mr. Dimmesdale’s outcry, and interpreted
it, with its multitudinous echoes and reverberations, as the clamour of the
fiends and night-hags, with whom she was well known to make excursions in the
forest.</p>
<p>Detecting the gleam of Governor Bellingham’s lamp, the old lady quickly
extinguished her own, and vanished. Possibly, she went up among the clouds. The
minister saw nothing further of her motions. The magistrate, after a wary
observation of the darkness—into which, nevertheless, he could see but
little further than he might into a mill-stone—retired from the window.</p>
<p>The minister grew comparatively calm. His eyes, however, were soon greeted by a
little glimmering light, which, at first a long way off was approaching up the
street. It threw a gleam of recognition, on here a post, and there a garden
fence, and here a latticed window-pane, and there a pump, with its full trough
of water, and here again an arched door of oak, with an iron knocker, and a
rough log for the door-step. The Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale noted all these minute
particulars, even while firmly convinced that the doom of his existence was
stealing onward, in the footsteps which he now heard; and that the gleam of the
lantern would fall upon him in a few moments more, and reveal his long-hidden
secret. As the light drew nearer, he beheld, within its illuminated circle, his
brother clergyman—or, to speak more accurately, his professional father,
as well as highly valued friend—the Reverend Mr. Wilson, who, as Mr.
Dimmesdale now conjectured, had been praying at the bedside of some dying man.
And so he had. The good old minister came freshly from the death-chamber of
Governor Winthrop, who had passed from earth to heaven within that very hour.
And now surrounded, like the saint-like personage of olden times, with a
radiant halo, that glorified him amid this gloomy night of sin—as if the
departed Governor had left him an inheritance of his glory, or as if he had
caught upon himself the distant shine of the celestial city, while looking
thitherward to see the triumphant pilgrim pass within its gates—now, in
short, good Father Wilson was moving homeward, aiding his footsteps with a
lighted lantern! The glimmer of this luminary suggested the above conceits to
Mr. Dimmesdale, who smiled—nay, almost laughed at them—and then
wondered if he was going mad.</p>
<p>As the Reverend Mr. Wilson passed beside the scaffold, closely muffling his
Geneva cloak about him with one arm, and holding the lantern before his breast
with the other, the minister could hardly restrain himself from speaking—</p>
<p>“A good evening to you, venerable Father Wilson. Come up hither, I pray
you, and pass a pleasant hour with me!”</p>
<p>Good Heavens! Had Mr. Dimmesdale actually spoken? For one instant he believed
that these words had passed his lips. But they were uttered only within his
imagination. The venerable Father Wilson continued to step slowly onward,
looking carefully at the muddy pathway before his feet, and never once turning
his head towards the guilty platform. When the light of the glimmering lantern
had faded quite away, the minister discovered, by the faintness which came over
him, that the last few moments had been a crisis of terrible anxiety, although
his mind had made an involuntary effort to relieve itself by a kind of lurid
playfulness.</p>
<p>Shortly afterwards, the like grisly sense of the humorous again stole in among
the solemn phantoms of his thought. He felt his limbs growing stiff with the
unaccustomed chilliness of the night, and doubted whether he should be able to
descend the steps of the scaffold. Morning would break and find him there. The
neighbourhood would begin to rouse itself. The earliest riser, coming forth in
the dim twilight, would perceive a vaguely-defined figure aloft on the place of
shame; and half-crazed betwixt alarm and curiosity, would go knocking from door
to door, summoning all the people to behold the ghost—as he needs must
think it—of some defunct transgressor. A dusky tumult would flap its
wings from one house to another. Then—the morning light still waxing
stronger—old patriarchs would rise up in great haste, each in his flannel
gown, and matronly dames, without pausing to put off their night-gear. The
whole tribe of decorous personages, who had never heretofore been seen with a
single hair of their heads awry, would start into public view with the disorder
of a nightmare in their aspects. Old Governor Bellingham would come grimly
forth, with his King James’ ruff fastened askew, and Mistress Hibbins,
with some twigs of the forest clinging to her skirts, and looking sourer than
ever, as having hardly got a wink of sleep after her night ride; and good
Father Wilson too, after spending half the night at a death-bed, and liking ill
to be disturbed, thus early, out of his dreams about the glorified saints.
Hither, likewise, would come the elders and deacons of Mr. Dimmesdale’s
church, and the young virgins who so idolized their minister, and had made a
shrine for him in their white bosoms, which now, by the by, in their hurry and
confusion, they would scantly have given themselves time to cover with their
kerchiefs. All people, in a word, would come stumbling over their thresholds,
and turning up their amazed and horror-stricken visages around the scaffold.
Whom would they discern there, with the red eastern light upon his brow? Whom,
but the Reverend Arthur Dimmesdale, half-frozen to death, overwhelmed with
shame, and standing where Hester Prynne had stood!</p>
<p>Carried away by the grotesque horror of this picture, the minister, unawares,
and to his own infinite alarm, burst into a great peal of laughter. It was
immediately responded to by a light, airy, childish laugh, in which, with a
thrill of the heart—but he knew not whether of exquisite pain, or
pleasure as acute—he recognised the tones of little Pearl.</p>
<p>“Pearl! Little Pearl!” cried he, after a moment’s pause;
then, suppressing his voice—“Hester! Hester Prynne! Are you
there?”</p>
<p>“Yes; it is Hester Prynne!” she replied, in a tone of surprise; and
the minister heard her footsteps approaching from the side-walk, along which
she had been passing. “It is I, and my little Pearl.”</p>
<p>“Whence come you, Hester?” asked the minister. “What sent you
hither?”</p>
<p>“I have been watching at a death-bed,” answered Hester Prynne
“at Governor Winthrop’s death-bed, and have taken his measure for a
robe, and am now going homeward to my dwelling.”</p>
<p>“Come up hither, Hester, thou and little Pearl,” said the Reverend
Mr. Dimmesdale. “Ye have both been here before, but I was not with you.
Come up hither once again, and we will stand all three together.”</p>
<p>She silently ascended the steps, and stood on the platform, holding little
Pearl by the hand. The minister felt for the child’s other hand, and took
it. The moment that he did so, there came what seemed a tumultuous rush of new
life, other life than his own pouring like a torrent into his heart, and
hurrying through all his veins, as if the mother and the child were
communicating their vital warmth to his half-torpid system. The three formed an
electric chain.</p>
<p>“Minister!” whispered little Pearl.</p>
<p>“What wouldst thou say, child?” asked Mr. Dimmesdale.</p>
<p>“Wilt thou stand here with mother and me, tomorrow noontide?”
inquired Pearl.</p>
<p>“Nay; not so, my little Pearl,” answered the minister; for, with
the new energy of the moment, all the dread of public exposure, that had so
long been the anguish of his life, had returned upon him; and he was already
trembling at the conjunction in which—with a strange joy,
nevertheless—he now found himself—“not so, my child. I shall,
indeed, stand with thy mother and thee one other day, but not tomorrow.”</p>
<p>Pearl laughed, and attempted to pull away her hand. But the minister held it
fast.</p>
<p>“A moment longer, my child!” said he.</p>
<p>“But wilt thou promise,” asked Pearl, “to take my hand, and
mother’s hand, tomorrow noontide?”</p>
<p>“Not then, Pearl,” said the minister; “but another
time.”</p>
<p>“And what other time?” persisted the child.</p>
<p>“At the great judgment day,” whispered the minister; and, strangely
enough, the sense that he was a professional teacher of the truth impelled him
to answer the child so. “Then, and there, before the judgment-seat, thy
mother, and thou, and I must stand together. But the daylight of this world
shall not see our meeting!”</p>
<p>Pearl laughed again.</p>
<p>But before Mr. Dimmesdale had done speaking, a light gleamed far and wide over
all the muffled sky. It was doubtless caused by one of those meteors, which the
night-watcher may so often observe burning out to waste, in the vacant regions
of the atmosphere. So powerful was its radiance, that it thoroughly illuminated
the dense medium of cloud betwixt the sky and earth. The great vault
brightened, like the dome of an immense lamp. It showed the familiar scene of
the street with the distinctness of mid-day, but also with the awfulness that
is always imparted to familiar objects by an unaccustomed light. The wooden
houses, with their jutting storeys and quaint gable-peaks; the doorsteps and
thresholds with the early grass springing up about them; the garden-plots,
black with freshly-turned earth; the wheel-track, little worn, and even in the
market-place margined with green on either side—all were visible, but
with a singularity of aspect that seemed to give another moral interpretation
to the things of this world than they had ever borne before. And there stood
the minister, with his hand over his heart; and Hester Prynne, with the
embroidered letter glimmering on her bosom; and little Pearl, herself a symbol,
and the connecting link between those two. They stood in the noon of that
strange and solemn splendour, as if it were the light that is to reveal all
secrets, and the daybreak that shall unite all who belong to one another.</p>
<p>There was witchcraft in little Pearl’s eyes; and her face, as she glanced
upward at the minister, wore that naughty smile which made its expression
frequently so elvish. She withdrew her hand from Mr. Dimmesdale’s, and
pointed across the street. But he clasped both his hands over his breast, and
cast his eyes towards the zenith.</p>
<p>Nothing was more common, in those days, than to interpret all meteoric
appearances, and other natural phenomena that occurred with less regularity
than the rise and set of sun and moon, as so many revelations from a
supernatural source. Thus, a blazing spear, a sword of flame, a bow, or a sheaf
of arrows seen in the midnight sky, prefigured Indian warfare. Pestilence was
known to have been foreboded by a shower of crimson light. We doubt whether any
marked event, for good or evil, ever befell New England, from its settlement
down to revolutionary times, of which the inhabitants had not been previously
warned by some spectacle of its nature. Not seldom, it had been seen by
multitudes. Oftener, however, its credibility rested on the faith of some
lonely eye-witness, who beheld the wonder through the coloured, magnifying, and
distorted medium of his imagination, and shaped it more distinctly in his
after-thought. It was, indeed, a majestic idea that the destiny of nations
should be revealed, in these awful hieroglyphics, on the cope of heaven. A
scroll so wide might not be deemed too expensive for Providence to write a
people’s doom upon. The belief was a favourite one with our forefathers,
as betokening that their infant commonwealth was under a celestial guardianship
of peculiar intimacy and strictness. But what shall we say, when an individual
discovers a revelation addressed to himself alone, on the same vast sheet of
record. In such a case, it could only be the symptom of a highly disordered
mental state, when a man, rendered morbidly self-contemplative by long,
intense, and secret pain, had extended his egotism over the whole expanse of
nature, until the firmament itself should appear no more than a fitting page
for his soul’s history and fate.</p>
<p>We impute it, therefore, solely to the disease in his own eye and heart that
the minister, looking upward to the zenith, beheld there the appearance of an
immense letter—the letter A—marked out in lines of dull red light.
Not but the meteor may have shown itself at that point, burning duskily through
a veil of cloud, but with no such shape as his guilty imagination gave it, or,
at least, with so little definiteness, that another’s guilt might have
seen another symbol in it.</p>
<p>There was a singular circumstance that characterised Mr. Dimmesdale’s
psychological state at this moment. All the time that he gazed upward to the
zenith, he was, nevertheless, perfectly aware that little Pearl was pointing
her finger towards old Roger Chillingworth, who stood at no great distance from
the scaffold. The minister appeared to see him, with the same glance that
discerned the miraculous letter. To his feature as to all other objects, the
meteoric light imparted a new expression; or it might well be that the
physician was not careful then, as at all other times, to hide the malevolence
with which he looked upon his victim. Certainly, if the meteor kindled up the
sky, and disclosed the earth, with an awfulness that admonished Hester Prynne
and the clergyman of the day of judgment, then might Roger Chillingworth have
passed with them for the arch-fiend, standing there with a smile and scowl, to
claim his own. So vivid was the expression, or so intense the minister’s
perception of it, that it seemed still to remain painted on the darkness after
the meteor had vanished, with an effect as if the street and all things else
were at once annihilated.</p>
<p>“Who is that man, Hester?” gasped Mr. Dimmesdale, overcome with
terror. “I shiver at him! Dost thou know the man? I hate him,
Hester!”</p>
<p>She remembered her oath, and was silent.</p>
<p>“I tell thee, my soul shivers at him!” muttered the minister again.
“Who is he? Who is he? Canst thou do nothing for me? I have a nameless
horror of the man!”</p>
<p>“Minister,” said little Pearl, “I can tell thee who he
is!”</p>
<p>“Quickly, then, child!” said the minister, bending his ear close to
her lips. “Quickly, and as low as thou canst whisper.”</p>
<p>Pearl mumbled something into his ear that sounded, indeed, like human language,
but was only such gibberish as children may be heard amusing themselves with by
the hour together. At all events, if it involved any secret information in
regard to old Roger Chillingworth, it was in a tongue unknown to the erudite
clergyman, and did but increase the bewilderment of his mind. The elvish child
then laughed aloud.</p>
<p>“Dost thou mock me now?” said the minister.</p>
<p>“Thou wast not bold!—thou wast not true!” answered the child.
“Thou wouldst not promise to take my hand, and mother’s hand,
tomorrow noontide!”</p>
<p>“Worthy sir,” answered the physician, who had now advanced to the
foot of the platform—“pious Master Dimmesdale! can this be you?
Well, well, indeed! We men of study, whose heads are in our books, have need to
be straitly looked after! We dream in our waking moments, and walk in our
sleep. Come, good sir, and my dear friend, I pray you let me lead you
home!”</p>
<p>“How knewest thou that I was here?” asked the minister, fearfully.</p>
<p>“Verily, and in good faith,” answered Roger Chillingworth, “I
knew nothing of the matter. I had spent the better part of the night at the
bedside of the worshipful Governor Winthrop, doing what my poor skill might to
give him ease. He, going home to a better world, I, likewise, was on my way
homeward, when this light shone out. Come with me, I beseech you, Reverend sir,
else you will be poorly able to do Sabbath duty tomorrow. Aha! see now how
they trouble the brain—these books!—these books! You should study
less, good sir, and take a little pastime, or these night whimsies will grow
upon you.”</p>
<p>“I will go home with you,” said Mr. Dimmesdale.</p>
<p>With a chill despondency, like one awakening, all nerveless, from an ugly
dream, he yielded himself to the physician, and was led away.</p>
<p>The next day, however, being the Sabbath, he preached a discourse which was
held to be the richest and most powerful, and the most replete with heavenly
influences, that had ever proceeded from his lips. Souls, it is said, more
souls than one, were brought to the truth by the efficacy of that sermon, and
vowed within themselves to cherish a holy gratitude towards Mr. Dimmesdale
throughout the long hereafter. But as he came down the pulpit steps, the
grey-bearded sexton met him, holding up a black glove, which the minister
recognised as his own.</p>
<p>“It was found,” said the Sexton, “this morning on the
scaffold where evil-doers are set up to public shame. Satan dropped it there, I
take it, intending a scurrilous jest against your reverence. But, indeed, he
was blind and foolish, as he ever and always is. A pure hand needs no glove to
cover it!”</p>
<p>“Thank you, my good friend,” said the minister, gravely, but
startled at heart; for so confused was his remembrance, that he had almost
brought himself to look at the events of the past night as visionary.</p>
<p>“Yes, it seems to be my glove, indeed!”</p>
<p>“And, since Satan saw fit to steal it, your reverence must needs handle
him without gloves henceforward,” remarked the old sexton, grimly
smiling. “But did your reverence hear of the portent that was seen last
night? a great red letter in the sky—the letter A, which we interpret to
stand for Angel. For, as our good Governor Winthrop was made an angel this past
night, it was doubtless held fit that there should be some notice
thereof!”</p>
<p>“No,” answered the minister; “I had not heard of it.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap13"></SPAN>XIII.<br/> ANOTHER VIEW OF HESTER</h2>
<p>In her late singular interview with Mr. Dimmesdale, Hester Prynne was shocked
at the condition to which she found the clergyman reduced. His nerve seemed
absolutely destroyed. His moral force was abased into more than childish
weakness. It grovelled helpless on the ground, even while his intellectual
faculties retained their pristine strength, or had perhaps acquired a morbid
energy, which disease only could have given them. With her knowledge of a train
of circumstances hidden from all others, she could readily infer that, besides
the legitimate action of his own conscience, a terrible machinery had been
brought to bear, and was still operating, on Mr. Dimmesdale’s well-being
and repose. Knowing what this poor fallen man had once been, her whole soul was
moved by the shuddering terror with which he had appealed to her—the
outcast woman—for support against his instinctively discovered enemy. She
decided, moreover, that he had a right to her utmost aid. Little accustomed, in
her long seclusion from society, to measure her ideas of right and wrong by any
standard external to herself, Hester saw—or seemed to see—that
there lay a responsibility upon her in reference to the clergyman, which she
owned to no other, nor to the whole world besides. The links that united her to
the rest of humankind—links of flowers, or silk, or gold, or whatever the
material—had all been broken. Here was the iron link of mutual crime,
which neither he nor she could break. Like all other ties, it brought along
with it its obligations.</p>
<p>Hester Prynne did not now occupy precisely the same position in which we beheld
her during the earlier periods of her ignominy. Years had come and gone. Pearl
was now seven years old. Her mother, with the scarlet letter on her breast,
glittering in its fantastic embroidery, had long been a familiar object to the
townspeople. As is apt to be the case when a person stands out in any
prominence before the community, and, at the same time, interferes neither with
public nor individual interests and convenience, a species of general regard
had ultimately grown up in reference to Hester Prynne. It is to the credit of
human nature that, except where its selfishness is brought into play, it loves
more readily than it hates. Hatred, by a gradual and quiet process, will even
be transformed to love, unless the change be impeded by a continually new
irritation of the original feeling of hostility. In this matter of Hester
Prynne there was neither irritation nor irksomeness. She never battled with the
public, but submitted uncomplainingly to its worst usage; she made no claim
upon it in requital for what she suffered; she did not weigh upon its
sympathies. Then, also, the blameless purity of her life during all these years
in which she had been set apart to infamy was reckoned largely in her favour.
With nothing now to lose, in the sight of mankind, and with no hope, and
seemingly no wish, of gaining anything, it could only be a genuine regard for
virtue that had brought back the poor wanderer to its paths.</p>
<p>It was perceived, too, that while Hester never put forward even the humblest
title to share in the world’s privileges—further than to breathe
the common air and earn daily bread for little Pearl and herself by the
faithful labour of her hands—she was quick to acknowledge her sisterhood
with the race of man whenever benefits were to be conferred. None so ready as
she to give of her little substance to every demand of poverty, even though the
bitter-hearted pauper threw back a gibe in requital of the food brought
regularly to his door, or the garments wrought for him by the fingers that
could have embroidered a monarch’s robe. None so self-devoted as Hester
when pestilence stalked through the town. In all seasons of calamity, indeed,
whether general or of individuals, the outcast of society at once found her
place. She came, not as a guest, but as a rightful inmate, into the household
that was darkened by trouble, as if its gloomy twilight were a medium in which
she was entitled to hold intercourse with her fellow-creature. There glimmered
the embroidered letter, with comfort in its unearthly ray. Elsewhere the token
of sin, it was the taper of the sick chamber. It had even thrown its gleam, in
the sufferer’s hard extremity, across the verge of time. It had shown him
where to set his foot, while the light of earth was fast becoming dim, and ere
the light of futurity could reach him. In such emergencies Hester’s
nature showed itself warm and rich—a well-spring of human tenderness,
unfailing to every real demand, and inexhaustible by the largest. Her breast,
with its badge of shame, was but the softer pillow for the head that needed
one. She was self-ordained a Sister of Mercy, or, we may rather say, the
world’s heavy hand had so ordained her, when neither the world nor she
looked forward to this result. The letter was the symbol of her calling. Such
helpfulness was found in her—so much power to do, and power to
sympathise—that many people refused to interpret the scarlet A by its
original signification. They said that it meant Able, so strong was Hester
Prynne, with a woman’s strength.</p>
<p>It was only the darkened house that could contain her. When sunshine came
again, she was not there. Her shadow had faded across the threshold. The
helpful inmate had departed, without one backward glance to gather up the meed
of gratitude, if any were in the hearts of those whom she had served so
zealously. Meeting them in the street, she never raised her head to receive
their greeting. If they were resolute to accost her, she laid her finger on the
scarlet letter, and passed on. This might be pride, but was so like humility,
that it produced all the softening influence of the latter quality on the
public mind. The public is despotic in its temper; it is capable of denying
common justice when too strenuously demanded as a right; but quite as
frequently it awards more than justice, when the appeal is made, as despots
love to have it made, entirely to its generosity. Interpreting Hester
Prynne’s deportment as an appeal of this nature, society was inclined to
show its former victim a more benign countenance than she cared to be favoured
with, or, perchance, than she deserved.</p>
<p>The rulers, and the wise and learned men of the community, were longer in
acknowledging the influence of Hester’s good qualities than the people.
The prejudices which they shared in common with the latter were fortified in
themselves by an iron frame-work of reasoning, that made it a far tougher
labour to expel them. Day by day, nevertheless, their sour and rigid wrinkles
were relaxing into something which, in the due course of years, might grow to
be an expression of almost benevolence. Thus it was with the men of rank, on
whom their eminent position imposed the guardianship of the public morals.
Individuals in private life, meanwhile, had quite forgiven Hester Prynne for
her frailty; nay, more, they had begun to look upon the scarlet letter as the
token, not of that one sin for which she had borne so long and dreary a
penance, but of her many good deeds since. “Do you see that woman with
the embroidered badge?” they would say to strangers. “It is our
Hester—the town’s own Hester—who is so kind to the poor, so
helpful to the sick, so comfortable to the afflicted!” Then, it is true,
the propensity of human nature to tell the very worst of itself, when embodied
in the person of another, would constrain them to whisper the black scandal of
bygone years. It was none the less a fact, however, that in the eyes of the
very men who spoke thus, the scarlet letter had the effect of the cross on a
nun’s bosom. It imparted to the wearer a kind of sacredness, which
enabled her to walk securely amid all peril. Had she fallen among thieves, it
would have kept her safe. It was reported, and believed by many, that an Indian
had drawn his arrow against the badge, and that the missile struck it, and fell
harmless to the ground.</p>
<p>The effect of the symbol—or rather, of the position in respect to society
that was indicated by it—on the mind of Hester Prynne herself was
powerful and peculiar. All the light and graceful foliage of her character had
been withered up by this red-hot brand, and had long ago fallen away, leaving a
bare and harsh outline, which might have been repulsive had she possessed
friends or companions to be repelled by it. Even the attractiveness of her
person had undergone a similar change. It might be partly owing to the studied
austerity of her dress, and partly to the lack of demonstration in her manners.
It was a sad transformation, too, that her rich and luxuriant hair had either
been cut off, or was so completely hidden by a cap, that not a shining lock of
it ever once gushed into the sunshine. It was due in part to all these causes,
but still more to something else, that there seemed to be no longer anything in
Hester’s face for Love to dwell upon; nothing in Hester’s form,
though majestic and statue-like, that Passion would ever dream of clasping in
its embrace; nothing in Hester’s bosom to make it ever again the pillow
of Affection. Some attribute had departed from her, the permanence of which had
been essential to keep her a woman. Such is frequently the fate, and such the
stern development, of the feminine character and person, when the woman has
encountered, and lived through, an experience of peculiar severity. If she be
all tenderness, she will die. If she survive, the tenderness will either be
crushed out of her, or—and the outward semblance is the
same—crushed so deeply into her heart that it can never show itself more.
The latter is perhaps the truest theory. She who has once been a woman, and
ceased to be so, might at any moment become a woman again, if there were only
the magic touch to effect the transformation. We shall see whether Hester
Prynne were ever afterwards so touched and so transfigured.</p>
<p>Much of the marble coldness of Hester’s impression was to be attributed
to the circumstance that her life had turned, in a great measure, from passion
and feeling to thought. Standing alone in the world—alone, as to any
dependence on society, and with little Pearl to be guided and
protected—alone, and hopeless of retrieving her position, even had she
not scorned to consider it desirable—she cast away the fragment of a
broken chain. The world’s law was no law for her mind. It was an age in
which the human intellect, newly emancipated, had taken a more active and a
wider range than for many centuries before. Men of the sword had overthrown
nobles and kings. Men bolder than these had overthrown and rearranged—not
actually, but within the sphere of theory, which was their most real
abode—the whole system of ancient prejudice, wherewith was linked much of
ancient principle. Hester Prynne imbibed this spirit. She assumed a freedom of
speculation, then common enough on the other side of the Atlantic, but which
our forefathers, had they known it, would have held to be a deadlier crime than
that stigmatised by the scarlet letter. In her lonesome cottage, by the
sea-shore, thoughts visited her such as dared to enter no other dwelling in New
England; shadowy guests, that would have been as perilous as demons to their
entertainer, could they have been seen so much as knocking at her door.</p>
<p>It is remarkable that persons who speculate the most boldly often conform with
the most perfect quietude to the external regulations of society. The thought
suffices them, without investing itself in the flesh and blood of action. So it
seemed to be with Hester. Yet, had little Pearl never come to her from the
spiritual world, it might have been far otherwise. Then she might have come
down to us in history, hand in hand with Ann Hutchinson, as the foundress of a
religious sect. She might, in one of her phases, have been a prophetess. She
might, and not improbably would, have suffered death from the stern tribunals
of the period, for attempting to undermine the foundations of the Puritan
establishment. But, in the education of her child, the mother’s
enthusiasm of thought had something to wreak itself upon. Providence, in the
person of this little girl, had assigned to Hester’s charge, the germ and
blossom of womanhood, to be cherished and developed amid a host of
difficulties. Everything was against her. The world was hostile. The
child’s own nature had something wrong in it which continually betokened
that she had been born amiss—the effluence of her mother’s lawless
passion—and often impelled Hester to ask, in bitterness of heart, whether
it were for ill or good that the poor little creature had been born at all.</p>
<p>Indeed, the same dark question often rose into her mind with reference to the
whole race of womanhood. Was existence worth accepting even to the happiest
among them? As concerned her own individual existence, she had long ago decided
in the negative, and dismissed the point as settled. A tendency to speculation,
though it may keep women quiet, as it does man, yet makes her sad. She
discerns, it may be, such a hopeless task before her. As a first step, the
whole system of society is to be torn down and built up anew. Then the very
nature of the opposite sex, or its long hereditary habit, which has become like
nature, is to be essentially modified before woman can be allowed to assume
what seems a fair and suitable position. Finally, all other difficulties being
obviated, woman cannot take advantage of these preliminary reforms until she
herself shall have undergone a still mightier change, in which, perhaps, the
ethereal essence, wherein she has her truest life, will be found to have
evaporated. A woman never overcomes these problems by any exercise of thought.
They are not to be solved, or only in one way. If her heart chance to come
uppermost, they vanish. Thus Hester Prynne, whose heart had lost its regular
and healthy throb, wandered without a clue in the dark labyrinth of mind; now
turned aside by an insurmountable precipice; now starting back from a deep
chasm. There was wild and ghastly scenery all around her, and a home and
comfort nowhere. At times a fearful doubt strove to possess her soul, whether
it were not better to send Pearl at once to Heaven, and go herself to such
futurity as Eternal Justice should provide.</p>
<p>The scarlet letter had not done its office. Now, however, her interview with
the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, on the night of his vigil, had given her a new
theme of reflection, and held up to her an object that appeared worthy of any
exertion and sacrifice for its attainment. She had witnessed the intense misery
beneath which the minister struggled, or, to speak more accurately, had ceased
to struggle. She saw that he stood on the verge of lunacy, if he had not
already stepped across it. It was impossible to doubt that, whatever painful
efficacy there might be in the secret sting of remorse, a deadlier venom had
been infused into it by the hand that proffered relief. A secret enemy had been
continually by his side, under the semblance of a friend and helper, and had
availed himself of the opportunities thus afforded for tampering with the
delicate springs of Mr. Dimmesdale’s nature. Hester could not but ask
herself whether there had not originally been a defect of truth, courage, and
loyalty on her own part, in allowing the minister to be thrown into a position
where so much evil was to be foreboded and nothing auspicious to be hoped. Her
only justification lay in the fact that she had been able to discern no method
of rescuing him from a blacker ruin than had overwhelmed herself except by
acquiescing in Roger Chillingworth’s scheme of disguise. Under that
impulse she had made her choice, and had chosen, as it now appeared, the more
wretched alternative of the two. She determined to redeem her error so far as
it might yet be possible. Strengthened by years of hard and solemn trial, she
felt herself no longer so inadequate to cope with Roger Chillingworth as on
that night, abased by sin and half-maddened by the ignominy that was still new,
when they had talked together in the prison-chamber. She had climbed her way
since then to a higher point. The old man, on the other hand, had brought
himself nearer to her level, or, perhaps, below it, by the revenge which he had
stooped for.</p>
<p>In fine, Hester Prynne resolved to meet her former husband, and do what might
be in her power for the rescue of the victim on whom he had so evidently set
his gripe. The occasion was not long to seek. One afternoon, walking with Pearl
in a retired part of the peninsula, she beheld the old physician with a basket
on one arm and a staff in the other hand, stooping along the ground in quest of
roots and herbs to concoct his medicine withal.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap14"></SPAN>XIV.<br/> HESTER AND THE PHYSICIAN</h2>
<p>Hester bade little Pearl run down to the margin of the water, and play with the
shells and tangled sea-weed, until she should have talked awhile with yonder
gatherer of herbs. So the child flew away like a bird, and, making bare her
small white feet went pattering along the moist margin of the sea. Here and
there she came to a full stop, and peeped curiously into a pool, left by the
retiring tide as a mirror for Pearl to see her face in. Forth peeped at her,
out of the pool, with dark, glistening curls around her head, and an elf-smile
in her eyes, the image of a little maid whom Pearl, having no other playmate,
invited to take her hand and run a race with her. But the visionary little maid
on her part, beckoned likewise, as if to say—“This is a better
place; come thou into the pool.” And Pearl, stepping in mid-leg deep,
beheld her own white feet at the bottom; while, out of a still lower depth,
came the gleam of a kind of fragmentary smile, floating to and fro in the
agitated water.</p>
<p>Meanwhile her mother had accosted the physician. “I would speak a word
with you,” said she—“a word that concerns us much.”</p>
<p>“Aha! and is it Mistress Hester that has a word for old Roger
Chillingworth?” answered he, raising himself from his stooping posture.
“With all my heart! Why, mistress, I hear good tidings of you on all
hands! No longer ago than yester-eve, a magistrate, a wise and godly man, was
discoursing of your affairs, Mistress Hester, and whispered me that there had
been question concerning you in the council. It was debated whether or no, with
safety to the commonweal, yonder scarlet letter might be taken off your bosom.
On my life, Hester, I made my intreaty to the worshipful magistrate that it
might be done forthwith.”</p>
<p>“It lies not in the pleasure of the magistrates to take off the
badge,” calmly replied Hester. “Were I worthy to be quit of it, it
would fall away of its own nature, or be transformed into something that should
speak a different purport.”</p>
<p>“Nay, then, wear it, if it suit you better,” rejoined he, “A
woman must needs follow her own fancy touching the adornment of her person. The
letter is gaily embroidered, and shows right bravely on your bosom!”</p>
<p>All this while Hester had been looking steadily at the old man, and was
shocked, as well as wonder-smitten, to discern what a change had been wrought
upon him within the past seven years. It was not so much that he had grown
older; for though the traces of advancing life were visible, he bore his age
well, and seemed to retain a wiry vigour and alertness. But the former aspect
of an intellectual and studious man, calm and quiet, which was what she best
remembered in him, had altogether vanished, and been succeeded by an eager,
searching, almost fierce, yet carefully guarded look. It seemed to be his wish
and purpose to mask this expression with a smile, but the latter played him
false, and flickered over his visage so derisively that the spectator could see
his blackness all the better for it. Ever and anon, too, there came a glare of
red light out of his eyes, as if the old man’s soul were on fire and kept
on smouldering duskily within his breast, until by some casual puff of passion
it was blown into a momentary flame. This he repressed as speedily as possible,
and strove to look as if nothing of the kind had happened.</p>
<p>In a word, old Roger Chillingworth was a striking evidence of man’s
faculty of transforming himself into a devil, if he will only, for a reasonable
space of time, undertake a devil’s office. This unhappy person had
effected such a transformation by devoting himself for seven years to the
constant analysis of a heart full of torture, and deriving his enjoyment
thence, and adding fuel to those fiery tortures which he analysed and gloated
over.</p>
<p>The scarlet letter burned on Hester Prynne’s bosom. Here was another
ruin, the responsibility of which came partly home to her.</p>
<p>“What see you in my face,” asked the physician, “that you
look at it so earnestly?”</p>
<p>“Something that would make me weep, if there were any tears bitter enough
for it,” answered she. “But let it pass! It is of yonder miserable
man that I would speak.”</p>
<p>“And what of him?” cried Roger Chillingworth, eagerly, as if he
loved the topic, and were glad of an opportunity to discuss it with the only
person of whom he could make a confidant. “Not to hide the truth,
Mistress Hester, my thoughts happen just now to be busy with the gentleman. So
speak freely and I will make answer.”</p>
<p>“When we last spake together,” said Hester, “now seven years
ago, it was your pleasure to extort a promise of secrecy as touching the former
relation betwixt yourself and me. As the life and good fame of yonder man were
in your hands there seemed no choice to me, save to be silent in accordance
with your behest. Yet it was not without heavy misgivings that I thus bound
myself, for, having cast off all duty towards other human beings, there
remained a duty towards him, and something whispered me that I was betraying it
in pledging myself to keep your counsel. Since that day no man is so near to
him as you. You tread behind his every footstep. You are beside him, sleeping
and waking. You search his thoughts. You burrow and rankle in his heart! Your
clutch is on his life, and you cause him to die daily a living death, and still
he knows you not. In permitting this I have surely acted a false part by the
only man to whom the power was left me to be true!”</p>
<p>“What choice had you?” asked Roger Chillingworth. “My finger,
pointed at this man, would have hurled him from his pulpit into a dungeon,
thence, peradventure, to the gallows!”</p>
<p>“It had been better so!” said Hester Prynne.</p>
<p>“What evil have I done the man?” asked Roger Chillingworth again.
“I tell thee, Hester Prynne, the richest fee that ever physician earned
from monarch could not have bought such care as I have wasted on this miserable
priest! But for my aid his life would have burned away in torments within the
first two years after the perpetration of his crime and thine. For, Hester, his
spirit lacked the strength that could have borne up, as thine has, beneath a
burden like thy scarlet letter. Oh, I could reveal a goodly secret! But enough.
What art can do, I have exhausted on him. That he now breathes and creeps about
on earth is owing all to me!”</p>
<p>“Better he had died at once!” said Hester Prynne.</p>
<p>“Yea, woman, thou sayest truly!” cried old Roger Chillingworth,
letting the lurid fire of his heart blaze out before her eyes. “Better
had he died at once! Never did mortal suffer what this man has suffered. And
all, all, in the sight of his worst enemy! He has been conscious of me. He has
felt an influence dwelling always upon him like a curse. He knew, by some
spiritual sense—for the Creator never made another being so sensitive as
this—he knew that no friendly hand was pulling at his heartstrings, and
that an eye was looking curiously into him, which sought only evil, and found
it. But he knew not that the eye and hand were mine! With the superstition
common to his brotherhood, he fancied himself given over to a fiend, to be
tortured with frightful dreams and desperate thoughts, the sting of remorse and
despair of pardon, as a foretaste of what awaits him beyond the grave. But it
was the constant shadow of my presence, the closest propinquity of the man whom
he had most vilely wronged, and who had grown to exist only by this perpetual
poison of the direst revenge! Yea, indeed, he did not err, there was a fiend at
his elbow! A mortal man, with once a human heart, has become a fiend for his
especial torment.”</p>
<p>The unfortunate physician, while uttering these words, lifted his hands with a
look of horror, as if he had beheld some frightful shape, which he could not
recognise, usurping the place of his own image in a glass. It was one of those
moments—which sometimes occur only at the interval of years—when a
man’s moral aspect is faithfully revealed to his mind’s eye. Not
improbably he had never before viewed himself as he did now.</p>
<p>“Hast thou not tortured him enough?” said Hester, noticing the old
man’s look. “Has he not paid thee all?”</p>
<p>“No, no! He has but increased the debt!” answered the physician,
and as he proceeded, his manner lost its fiercer characteristics, and subsided
into gloom. “Dost thou remember me, Hester, as I was nine years agone?
Even then I was in the autumn of my days, nor was it the early autumn. But all
my life had been made up of earnest, studious, thoughtful, quiet years,
bestowed faithfully for the increase of mine own knowledge, and faithfully,
too, though this latter object was but casual to the other—faithfully for
the advancement of human welfare. No life had been more peaceful and innocent
than mine; few lives so rich with benefits conferred. Dost thou remember me?
Was I not, though you might deem me cold, nevertheless a man thoughtful for
others, craving little for himself—kind, true, just and of constant, if
not warm affections? Was I not all this?”</p>
<p>“All this, and more,” said Hester.</p>
<p>“And what am I now?” demanded he, looking into her face, and
permitting the whole evil within him to be written on his features. “I
have already told thee what I am—a fiend! Who made me so?”</p>
<p>“It was myself,” cried Hester, shuddering. “It was I, not
less than he. Why hast thou not avenged thyself on me?”</p>
<p>“I have left thee to the scarlet letter,” replied Roger
Chillingworth. “If that has not avenged me, I can do no more!”</p>
<p>He laid his finger on it with a smile.</p>
<p>“It has avenged thee,” answered Hester Prynne.</p>
<p>“I judged no less,” said the physician. “And now what wouldst
thou with me touching this man?”</p>
<p>“I must reveal the secret,” answered Hester, firmly. “He must
discern thee in thy true character. What may be the result I know not. But this
long debt of confidence, due from me to him, whose bane and ruin I have been,
shall at length be paid. So far as concerns the overthrow or preservation of
his fair fame and his earthly state, and perchance his life, he is in my hands.
Nor do I—whom the scarlet letter has disciplined to truth, though it be
the truth of red-hot iron entering into the soul—nor do I perceive such
advantage in his living any longer a life of ghastly emptiness, that I shall
stoop to implore thy mercy. Do with him as thou wilt! There is no good for him,
no good for me, no good for thee. There is no good for little Pearl. There is
no path to guide us out of this dismal maze.”</p>
<p>“Woman, I could well-nigh pity thee,” said Roger Chillingworth,
unable to restrain a thrill of admiration too, for there was a quality almost
majestic in the despair which she expressed. “Thou hadst great elements.
Peradventure, hadst thou met earlier with a better love than mine, this evil
had not been. I pity thee, for the good that has been wasted in thy
nature.”</p>
<p>“And I thee,” answered Hester Prynne, “for the hatred that
has transformed a wise and just man to a fiend! Wilt thou yet purge it out of
thee, and be once more human? If not for his sake, then doubly for thine own!
Forgive, and leave his further retribution to the Power that claims it! I said,
but now, that there could be no good event for him, or thee, or me, who are
here wandering together in this gloomy maze of evil, and stumbling at every
step over the guilt wherewith we have strewn our path. It is not so! There
might be good for thee, and thee alone, since thou hast been deeply wronged and
hast it at thy will to pardon. Wilt thou give up that only privilege? Wilt thou
reject that priceless benefit?”</p>
<p>“Peace, Hester—peace!” replied the old man, with gloomy
sternness—“it is not granted me to pardon. I have no such power as
thou tellest me of. My old faith, long forgotten, comes back to me, and
explains all that we do, and all we suffer. By thy first step awry, thou didst
plant the germ of evil; but since that moment it has all been a dark necessity.
Ye that have wronged me are not sinful, save in a kind of typical illusion;
neither am I fiend-like, who have snatched a fiend’s office from his
hands. It is our fate. Let the black flower blossom as it may! Now, go thy
ways, and deal as thou wilt with yonder man.”</p>
<p>He waved his hand, and betook himself again to his employment of gathering
herbs.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap15"></SPAN>XV.<br/> HESTER AND PEARL</h2>
<p>So Roger Chillingworth—a deformed old figure with a face that haunted
men’s memories longer than they liked—took leave of Hester Prynne,
and went stooping away along the earth. He gathered here and there a herb, or
grubbed up a root and put it into the basket on his arm. His gray beard almost
touched the ground as he crept onward. Hester gazed after him a little while,
looking with a half fantastic curiosity to see whether the tender grass of
early spring would not be blighted beneath him and show the wavering track of
his footsteps, sere and brown, across its cheerful verdure. She wondered what
sort of herbs they were which the old man was so sedulous to gather. Would not
the earth, quickened to an evil purpose by the sympathy of his eye, greet him
with poisonous shrubs of species hitherto unknown, that would start up under
his fingers? Or might it suffice him that every wholesome growth should be
converted into something deleterious and malignant at his touch? Did the sun,
which shone so brightly everywhere else, really fall upon him? Or was there, as
it rather seemed, a circle of ominous shadow moving along with his deformity
whichever way he turned himself? And whither was he now going? Would he not
suddenly sink into the earth, leaving a barren and blasted spot, where, in due
course of time, would be seen deadly nightshade, dogwood, henbane, and whatever
else of vegetable wickedness the climate could produce, all flourishing with
hideous luxuriance? Or would he spread bat’s wings and flee away, looking
so much the uglier the higher he rose towards heaven?</p>
<p>“Be it sin or no,” said Hester Prynne, bitterly, as still she gazed
after him, “I hate the man!”</p>
<p>She upbraided herself for the sentiment, but could not overcome or lessen it.
Attempting to do so, she thought of those long-past days in a distant land,
when he used to emerge at eventide from the seclusion of his study and sit down
in the firelight of their home, and in the light of her nuptial smile. He
needed to bask himself in that smile, he said, in order that the chill of so
many lonely hours among his books might be taken off the scholar’s heart.
Such scenes had once appeared not otherwise than happy, but now, as viewed
through the dismal medium of her subsequent life, they classed themselves among
her ugliest remembrances. She marvelled how such scenes could have been! She
marvelled how she could ever have been wrought upon to marry him! She deemed it
her crime most to be repented of, that she had ever endured and reciprocated
the lukewarm grasp of his hand, and had suffered the smile of her lips and eyes
to mingle and melt into his own. And it seemed a fouler offence committed by
Roger Chillingworth than any which had since been done him, that, in the time
when her heart knew no better, he had persuaded her to fancy herself happy by
his side.</p>
<p>“Yes, I hate him!” repeated Hester more bitterly than before.
“He betrayed me! He has done me worse wrong than I did him!”</p>
<p>Let men tremble to win the hand of woman, unless they win along with it the
utmost passion of her heart! Else it may be their miserable fortune, as it was
Roger Chillingworth’s, when some mightier touch than their own may have
awakened all her sensibilities, to be reproached even for the calm content, the
marble image of happiness, which they will have imposed upon her as the warm
reality. But Hester ought long ago to have done with this injustice. What did
it betoken? Had seven long years, under the torture of the scarlet letter,
inflicted so much of misery and wrought out no repentance?</p>
<p>The emotion of that brief space, while she stood gazing after the crooked
figure of old Roger Chillingworth, threw a dark light on Hester’s state
of mind, revealing much that she might not otherwise have acknowledged to
herself.</p>
<p>He being gone, she summoned back her child.</p>
<p>“Pearl! Little Pearl! Where are you?”</p>
<p>Pearl, whose activity of spirit never flagged, had been at no loss for
amusement while her mother talked with the old gatherer of herbs. At first, as
already told, she had flirted fancifully with her own image in a pool of water,
beckoning the phantom forth, and—as it declined to venture—seeking
a passage for herself into its sphere of impalpable earth and unattainable sky.
Soon finding, however, that either she or the image was unreal, she turned
elsewhere for better pastime. She made little boats out of birch-bark, and
freighted them with snailshells, and sent out more ventures on the mighty deep
than any merchant in New England; but the larger part of them foundered near
the shore. She seized a live horse-shoe by the tail, and made prize of several
five-fingers, and laid out a jelly-fish to melt in the warm sun. Then she took
up the white foam that streaked the line of the advancing tide, and threw it
upon the breeze, scampering after it with winged footsteps to catch the great
snowflakes ere they fell. Perceiving a flock of beach-birds that fed and
fluttered along the shore, the naughty child picked up her apron full of
pebbles, and, creeping from rock to rock after these small sea-fowl, displayed
remarkable dexterity in pelting them. One little gray bird, with a white
breast, Pearl was almost sure had been hit by a pebble, and fluttered away with
a broken wing. But then the elf-child sighed, and gave up her sport, because it
grieved her to have done harm to a little being that was as wild as the
sea-breeze, or as wild as Pearl herself.</p>
<p>Her final employment was to gather seaweed of various kinds, and make herself a
scarf or mantle, and a head-dress, and thus assume the aspect of a little
mermaid. She inherited her mother’s gift for devising drapery and
costume. As the last touch to her mermaid’s garb, Pearl took some
eel-grass and imitated, as best she could, on her own bosom the decoration with
which she was so familiar on her mother’s. A letter—the letter
A—but freshly green instead of scarlet. The child bent her chin upon her
breast, and contemplated this device with strange interest, even as if the one
only thing for which she had been sent into the world was to make out its
hidden import.</p>
<p>“I wonder if mother will ask me what it means?” thought Pearl.</p>
<p>Just then she heard her mother’s voice, and, flitting along as lightly as
one of the little sea-birds, appeared before Hester Prynne dancing, laughing,
and pointing her finger to the ornament upon her bosom.</p>
<p>“My little Pearl,” said Hester, after a moment’s silence,
“the green letter, and on thy childish bosom, has no purport. But dost
thou know, my child, what this letter means which thy mother is doomed to
wear?”</p>
<p>“Yes, mother,” said the child. “It is the great letter A.
Thou hast taught me in the horn-book.”</p>
<p>Hester looked steadily into her little face; but though there was that singular
expression which she had so often remarked in her black eyes, she could not
satisfy herself whether Pearl really attached any meaning to the symbol. She
felt a morbid desire to ascertain the point.</p>
<p>“Dost thou know, child, wherefore thy mother wears this letter?”</p>
<p>“Truly do I!” answered Pearl, looking brightly into her
mother’s face. “It is for the same reason that the minister keeps
his hand over his heart!”</p>
<p>“And what reason is that?” asked Hester, half smiling at the absurd
incongruity of the child’s observation; but on second thoughts turning
pale.</p>
<p>“What has the letter to do with any heart save mine?”</p>
<p>“Nay, mother, I have told all I know,” said Pearl, more seriously
than she was wont to speak. “Ask yonder old man whom thou hast been
talking with,—it may be he can tell. But in good earnest now, mother
dear, what does this scarlet letter mean?—and why dost thou wear it on
thy bosom?—and why does the minister keep his hand over his heart?”</p>
<p>She took her mother’s hand in both her own, and gazed into her eyes with
an earnestness that was seldom seen in her wild and capricious character. The
thought occurred to Hester, that the child might really be seeking to approach
her with childlike confidence, and doing what she could, and as intelligently
as she knew how, to establish a meeting-point of sympathy. It showed Pearl in
an unwonted aspect. Heretofore, the mother, while loving her child with the
intensity of a sole affection, had schooled herself to hope for little other
return than the waywardness of an April breeze, which spends its time in airy
sport, and has its gusts of inexplicable passion, and is petulant in its best
of moods, and chills oftener than caresses you, when you take it to your bosom;
in requital of which misdemeanours it will sometimes, of its own vague purpose,
kiss your cheek with a kind of doubtful tenderness, and play gently with your
hair, and then be gone about its other idle business, leaving a dreamy pleasure
at your heart. And this, moreover, was a mother’s estimate of the
child’s disposition. Any other observer might have seen few but unamiable
traits, and have given them a far darker colouring. But now the idea came
strongly into Hester’s mind, that Pearl, with her remarkable precocity
and acuteness, might already have approached the age when she could have been
made a friend, and intrusted with as much of her mother’s sorrows as
could be imparted, without irreverence either to the parent or the child. In
the little chaos of Pearl’s character there might be seen emerging and
could have been from the very first—the steadfast principles of an
unflinching courage—an uncontrollable will—sturdy pride, which
might be disciplined into self-respect—and a bitter scorn of many things
which, when examined, might be found to have the taint of falsehood in them.
She possessed affections, too, though hitherto acrid and disagreeable, as are
the richest flavours of unripe fruit. With all these sterling attributes,
thought Hester, the evil which she inherited from her mother must be great
indeed, if a noble woman do not grow out of this elfish child.</p>
<p>Pearl’s inevitable tendency to hover about the enigma of the scarlet
letter seemed an innate quality of her being. From the earliest epoch of her
conscious life, she had entered upon this as her appointed mission. Hester had
often fancied that Providence had a design of justice and retribution, in
endowing the child with this marked propensity; but never, until now, had she
bethought herself to ask, whether, linked with that design, there might not
likewise be a purpose of mercy and beneficence. If little Pearl were
entertained with faith and trust, as a spirit messenger no less than an earthly
child, might it not be her errand to soothe away the sorrow that lay cold in
her mother’s heart, and converted it into a tomb?—and to help her
to overcome the passion, once so wild, and even yet neither dead nor asleep,
but only imprisoned within the same tomb-like heart?</p>
<p>Such were some of the thoughts that now stirred in Hester’s mind, with as
much vivacity of impression as if they had actually been whispered into her
ear. And there was little Pearl, all this while, holding her mother’s
hand in both her own, and turning her face upward, while she put these
searching questions, once and again, and still a third time.</p>
<p>“What does the letter mean, mother? and why dost thou wear it? and why
does the minister keep his hand over his heart?”</p>
<p>“What shall I say?” thought Hester to herself. “No! if this
be the price of the child’s sympathy, I cannot pay it.”</p>
<p>Then she spoke aloud—</p>
<p>“Silly Pearl,” said she, “what questions are these? There are
many things in this world that a child must not ask about. What know I of the
minister’s heart? And as for the scarlet letter, I wear it for the sake
of its gold thread.”</p>
<p>In all the seven bygone years, Hester Prynne had never before been false to the
symbol on her bosom. It may be that it was the talisman of a stern and severe,
but yet a guardian spirit, who now forsook her; as recognising that, in spite
of his strict watch over her heart, some new evil had crept into it, or some
old one had never been expelled. As for little Pearl, the earnestness soon
passed out of her face.</p>
<p>But the child did not see fit to let the matter drop. Two or three times, as
her mother and she went homeward, and as often at supper-time, and while Hester
was putting her to bed, and once after she seemed to be fairly asleep, Pearl
looked up, with mischief gleaming in her black eyes.</p>
<p>“Mother,” said she, “what does the scarlet letter
mean?”</p>
<p>And the next morning, the first indication the child gave of being awake was by
popping up her head from the pillow, and making that other enquiry, which she
had so unaccountably connected with her investigations about the scarlet
letter—</p>
<p>“Mother!—Mother!—Why does the minister keep his hand over his
heart?”</p>
<p>“Hold thy tongue, naughty child!” answered her mother, with an
asperity that she had never permitted to herself before. “Do not tease
me; else I shall put thee into the dark closet!”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap16"></SPAN>XVI.<br/> A FOREST WALK</h2>
<p>Hester Prynne remained constant in her resolve to make known to Mr. Dimmesdale,
at whatever risk of present pain or ulterior consequences, the true character
of the man who had crept into his intimacy. For several days, however, she
vainly sought an opportunity of addressing him in some of the meditative walks
which she knew him to be in the habit of taking along the shores of the
Peninsula, or on the wooded hills of the neighbouring country. There would have
been no scandal, indeed, nor peril to the holy whiteness of the
clergyman’s good fame, had she visited him in his own study, where many a
penitent, ere now, had confessed sins of perhaps as deep a dye as the one
betokened by the scarlet letter. But, partly that she dreaded the secret or
undisguised interference of old Roger Chillingworth, and partly that her
conscious heart imparted suspicion where none could have been felt, and partly
that both the minister and she would need the whole wide world to breathe in,
while they talked together—for all these reasons Hester never thought of
meeting him in any narrower privacy than beneath the open sky.</p>
<p>At last, while attending a sick chamber, whither the Rev. Mr. Dimmesdale had
been summoned to make a prayer, she learnt that he had gone, the day before, to
visit the Apostle Eliot, among his Indian converts. He would probably return by
a certain hour in the afternoon of the morrow. Betimes, therefore, the next
day, Hester took little Pearl—who was necessarily the companion of all
her mother’s expeditions, however inconvenient her presence—and set
forth.</p>
<p>The road, after the two wayfarers had crossed from the Peninsula to the
mainland, was no other than a footpath. It straggled onward into the mystery
of the primeval forest. This hemmed it in so narrowly, and stood so black and
dense on either side, and disclosed such imperfect glimpses of the sky above,
that, to Hester’s mind, it imaged not amiss the moral wilderness in which
she had so long been wandering. The day was chill and sombre. Overhead was a
gray expanse of cloud, slightly stirred, however, by a breeze; so that a gleam
of flickering sunshine might now and then be seen at its solitary play along
the path. This flitting cheerfulness was always at the further extremity of
some long vista through the forest. The sportive sunlight—feebly
sportive, at best, in the predominant pensiveness of the day and
scene—withdrew itself as they came nigh, and left the spots where it had
danced the drearier, because they had hoped to find them bright.</p>
<p>“Mother,” said little Pearl, “the sunshine does not love you.
It runs away and hides itself, because it is afraid of something on your bosom.
Now, see! There it is, playing a good way off. Stand you here, and let me run
and catch it. I am but a child. It will not flee from me—for I wear
nothing on my bosom yet!”</p>
<p>“Nor ever will, my child, I hope,” said Hester.</p>
<p>“And why not, mother?” asked Pearl, stopping short, just at the
beginning of her race. “Will not it come of its own accord when I am a
woman grown?”</p>
<p>“Run away, child,” answered her mother, “and catch the
sunshine. It will soon be gone.”</p>
<p>Pearl set forth at a great pace, and as Hester smiled to perceive, did actually
catch the sunshine, and stood laughing in the midst of it, all brightened by
its splendour, and scintillating with the vivacity excited by rapid motion. The
light lingered about the lonely child, as if glad of such a playmate, until her
mother had drawn almost nigh enough to step into the magic circle too.</p>
<p>“It will go now,” said Pearl, shaking her head.</p>
<p>“See!” answered Hester, smiling; “now I can stretch out my
hand and grasp some of it.”</p>
<p>As she attempted to do so, the sunshine vanished; or, to judge from the bright
expression that was dancing on Pearl’s features, her mother could have
fancied that the child had absorbed it into herself, and would give it forth
again, with a gleam about her path, as they should plunge into some gloomier
shade. There was no other attribute that so much impressed her with a sense of
new and untransmitted vigour in Pearl’s nature, as this never failing
vivacity of spirits: she had not the disease of sadness, which almost all
children, in these latter days, inherit, with the scrofula, from the troubles
of their ancestors. Perhaps this, too, was a disease, and but the reflex of the
wild energy with which Hester had fought against her sorrows before
Pearl’s birth. It was certainly a doubtful charm, imparting a hard,
metallic lustre to the child’s character. She wanted—what some
people want throughout life—a grief that should deeply touch her, and
thus humanise and make her capable of sympathy. But there was time enough yet
for little Pearl.</p>
<p>“Come, my child!” said Hester, looking about her from the spot
where Pearl had stood still in the sunshine—“we will sit down a
little way within the wood, and rest ourselves.”</p>
<p>“I am not aweary, mother,” replied the little girl. “But you
may sit down, if you will tell me a story meanwhile.”</p>
<p>“A story, child!” said Hester. “And about what?”</p>
<p>“Oh, a story about the Black Man,” answered Pearl, taking hold of
her mother’s gown, and looking up, half earnestly, half mischievously,
into her face.</p>
<p>“How he haunts this forest, and carries a book with him a big, heavy
book, with iron clasps; and how this ugly Black Man offers his book and an iron
pen to everybody that meets him here among the trees; and they are to write
their names with their own blood; and then he sets his mark on their bosoms.
Didst thou ever meet the Black Man, mother?”</p>
<p>“And who told you this story, Pearl,” asked her mother, recognising
a common superstition of the period.</p>
<p>“It was the old dame in the chimney corner, at the house where you
watched last night,” said the child. “But she fancied me asleep
while she was talking of it. She said that a thousand and a thousand people had
met him here, and had written in his book, and have his mark on them. And that
ugly tempered lady, old Mistress Hibbins, was one. And, mother, the old dame
said that this scarlet letter was the Black Man’s mark on thee, and that
it glows like a red flame when thou meetest him at midnight, here in the dark
wood. Is it true, mother? And dost thou go to meet him in the nighttime?”</p>
<p>“Didst thou ever awake and find thy mother gone?” asked Hester.</p>
<p>“Not that I remember,” said the child. “If thou fearest to
leave me in our cottage, thou mightest take me along with thee. I would very
gladly go! But, mother, tell me now! Is there such a Black Man? And didst thou
ever meet him? And is this his mark?”</p>
<p>“Wilt thou let me be at peace, if I once tell thee?” asked her
mother.</p>
<p>“Yes, if thou tellest me all,” answered Pearl.</p>
<p>“Once in my life I met the Black Man!” said her mother. “This
scarlet letter is his mark!”</p>
<p>Thus conversing, they entered sufficiently deep into the wood to secure
themselves from the observation of any casual passenger along the forest track.
Here they sat down on a luxuriant heap of moss; which at some epoch of the
preceding century, had been a gigantic pine, with its roots and trunk in the
darksome shade, and its head aloft in the upper atmosphere. It was a little
dell where they had seated themselves, with a leaf-strewn bank rising gently on
either side, and a brook flowing through the midst, over a bed of fallen and
drowned leaves. The trees impending over it had flung down great branches from
time to time, which choked up the current, and compelled it to form eddies and
black depths at some points; while, in its swifter and livelier passages there
appeared a channel-way of pebbles, and brown, sparkling sand. Letting the eyes
follow along the course of the stream, they could catch the reflected light
from its water, at some short distance within the forest, but soon lost all
traces of it amid the bewilderment of tree-trunks and underbrush, and here and
there a huge rock covered over with gray lichens. All these giant trees and
boulders of granite seemed intent on making a mystery of the course of this
small brook; fearing, perhaps, that, with its never-ceasing loquacity, it
should whisper tales out of the heart of the old forest whence it flowed, or
mirror its revelations on the smooth surface of a pool. Continually, indeed, as
it stole onward, the streamlet kept up a babble, kind, quiet, soothing, but
melancholy, like the voice of a young child that was spending its infancy
without playfulness, and knew not how to be merry among sad acquaintance and
events of sombre hue.</p>
<p>“Oh, brook! Oh, foolish and tiresome little brook!” cried Pearl,
after listening awhile to its talk, “Why art thou so sad? Pluck up a
spirit, and do not be all the time sighing and murmuring!”</p>
<p>But the brook, in the course of its little lifetime among the forest trees, had
gone through so solemn an experience that it could not help talking about it,
and seemed to have nothing else to say. Pearl resembled the brook, inasmuch as
the current of her life gushed from a well-spring as mysterious, and had flowed
through scenes shadowed as heavily with gloom. But, unlike the little stream,
she danced and sparkled, and prattled airily along her course.</p>
<p>“What does this sad little brook say, mother?” inquired she.</p>
<p>“If thou hadst a sorrow of thine own, the brook might tell thee of
it,” answered her mother, “even as it is telling me of mine. But
now, Pearl, I hear a footstep along the path, and the noise of one putting
aside the branches. I would have thee betake thyself to play, and leave me to
speak with him that comes yonder.”</p>
<p>“Is it the Black Man?” asked Pearl.</p>
<p>“Wilt thou go and play, child?” repeated her mother, “But do
not stray far into the wood. And take heed that thou come at my first
call.”</p>
<p>“Yes, mother,” answered Pearl, “But if it be the Black Man,
wilt thou not let me stay a moment, and look at him, with his big book under
his arm?”</p>
<p>“Go, silly child!” said her mother impatiently. “It is no
Black Man! Thou canst see him now, through the trees. It is the
minister!”</p>
<p>“And so it is!” said the child. “And, mother, he has his hand
over his heart! Is it because, when the minister wrote his name in the book,
the Black Man set his mark in that place? But why does he not wear it outside
his bosom, as thou dost, mother?”</p>
<p>“Go now, child, and thou shalt tease me as thou wilt another time,”
cried Hester Prynne. “But do not stray far. Keep where thou canst hear
the babble of the brook.”</p>
<p>The child went singing away, following up the current of the brook, and
striving to mingle a more lightsome cadence with its melancholy voice. But the
little stream would not be comforted, and still kept telling its unintelligible
secret of some very mournful mystery that had happened—or making a
prophetic lamentation about something that was yet to happen—within the
verge of the dismal forest. So Pearl, who had enough of shadow in her own
little life, chose to break off all acquaintance with this repining brook. She
set herself, therefore, to gathering violets and wood-anemones, and some
scarlet columbines that she found growing in the crevice of a high rock.</p>
<p>When her elf-child had departed, Hester Prynne made a step or two towards the
track that led through the forest, but still remained under the deep shadow of
the trees. She beheld the minister advancing along the path entirely alone, and
leaning on a staff which he had cut by the wayside. He looked haggard and
feeble, and betrayed a nerveless despondency in his air, which had never so
remarkably characterised him in his walks about the settlement, nor in any
other situation where he deemed himself liable to notice. Here it was wofully
visible, in this intense seclusion of the forest, which of itself would have
been a heavy trial to the spirits. There was a listlessness in his gait, as if
he saw no reason for taking one step further, nor felt any desire to do so, but
would have been glad, could he be glad of anything, to fling himself down at
the root of the nearest tree, and lie there passive for evermore. The leaves
might bestrew him, and the soil gradually accumulate and form a little hillock
over his frame, no matter whether there were life in it or no. Death was too
definite an object to be wished for or avoided.</p>
<p>To Hester’s eye, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale exhibited no symptom of
positive and vivacious suffering, except that, as little Pearl had remarked, he
kept his hand over his heart.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap17"></SPAN>XVII.<br/> THE PASTOR AND HIS PARISHIONER</h2>
<p>Slowly as the minister walked, he had almost gone by before Hester Prynne could
gather voice enough to attract his observation. At length she succeeded.</p>
<p>“Arthur Dimmesdale!” she said, faintly at first, then louder, but
hoarsely—“Arthur Dimmesdale!”</p>
<p>“Who speaks?” answered the minister. Gathering himself quickly up,
he stood more erect, like a man taken by surprise in a mood to which he was
reluctant to have witnesses. Throwing his eyes anxiously in the direction of
the voice, he indistinctly beheld a form under the trees, clad in garments so
sombre, and so little relieved from the gray twilight into which the clouded
sky and the heavy foliage had darkened the noontide, that he knew not whether
it were a woman or a shadow. It may be that his pathway through life was
haunted thus by a spectre that had stolen out from among his thoughts.</p>
<p>He made a step nigher, and discovered the scarlet letter.</p>
<p>“Hester! Hester Prynne!”, said he; “is it thou? Art thou in
life?”</p>
<p>“Even so.” she answered. “In such life as has been mine these
seven years past! And thou, Arthur Dimmesdale, dost thou yet live?”</p>
<p>It was no wonder that they thus questioned one another’s actual and
bodily existence, and even doubted of their own. So strangely did they meet in
the dim wood that it was like the first encounter in the world beyond the grave
of two spirits who had been intimately connected in their former life, but now
stood coldly shuddering in mutual dread, as not yet familiar with their state,
nor wonted to the companionship of disembodied beings. Each a ghost, and
awe-stricken at the other ghost. They were awe-stricken likewise at themselves,
because the crisis flung back to them their consciousness, and revealed to each
heart its history and experience, as life never does, except at such breathless
epochs. The soul beheld its features in the mirror of the passing moment. It
was with fear, and tremulously, and, as it were, by a slow, reluctant
necessity, that Arthur Dimmesdale put forth his hand, chill as death, and
touched the chill hand of Hester Prynne. The grasp, cold as it was, took away
what was dreariest in the interview. They now felt themselves, at least,
inhabitants of the same sphere.</p>
<p>Without a word more spoken—neither he nor she assuming the guidance, but
with an unexpressed consent—they glided back into the shadow of the woods
whence Hester had emerged, and sat down on the heap of moss where she and Pearl
had before been sitting. When they found voice to speak, it was at first only
to utter remarks and inquiries such as any two acquaintances might have made,
about the gloomy sky, the threatening storm, and, next, the health of each.
Thus they went onward, not boldly, but step by step, into the themes that were
brooding deepest in their hearts. So long estranged by fate and circumstances,
they needed something slight and casual to run before and throw open the doors
of intercourse, so that their real thoughts might be led across the threshold.</p>
<p>After awhile, the minister fixed his eyes on Hester Prynne’s.</p>
<p>“Hester,” said he, “hast thou found peace?”</p>
<p>She smiled drearily, looking down upon her bosom.</p>
<p>“Hast thou?” she asked.</p>
<p>“None—nothing but despair!” he answered. “What else
could I look for, being what I am, and leading such a life as mine? Were I an
atheist—a man devoid of conscience—a wretch with coarse and brutal
instincts—I might have found peace long ere now. Nay, I never should have
lost it. But, as matters stand with my soul, whatever of good capacity there
originally was in me, all of God’s gifts that were the choicest have
become the ministers of spiritual torment. Hester, I am most miserable!”</p>
<p>“The people reverence thee,” said Hester. “And surely thou
workest good among them! Doth this bring thee no comfort?”</p>
<p>“More misery, Hester!—Only the more misery!” answered the
clergyman with a bitter smile. “As concerns the good which I may appear
to do, I have no faith in it. It must needs be a delusion. What can a ruined
soul like mine effect towards the redemption of other souls?—or a
polluted soul towards their purification? And as for the people’s
reverence, would that it were turned to scorn and hatred! Canst thou deem it,
Hester, a consolation that I must stand up in my pulpit, and meet so many eyes
turned upward to my face, as if the light of heaven were beaming from
it!—must see my flock hungry for the truth, and listening to my words as
if a tongue of Pentecost were speaking!—and then look inward, and discern
the black reality of what they idolise? I have laughed, in bitterness and agony
of heart, at the contrast between what I seem and what I am! And Satan laughs
at it!”</p>
<p>“You wrong yourself in this,” said Hester gently. “You have
deeply and sorely repented. Your sin is left behind you in the days long past.
Your present life is not less holy, in very truth, than it seems in
people’s eyes. Is there no reality in the penitence thus sealed and
witnessed by good works? And wherefore should it not bring you peace?”</p>
<p>“No, Hester—no!” replied the clergyman. “There is no
substance in it! It is cold and dead, and can do nothing for me! Of penance, I
have had enough! Of penitence, there has been none! Else, I should long ago
have thrown off these garments of mock holiness, and have shown myself to
mankind as they will see me at the judgment-seat. Happy are you, Hester, that
wear the scarlet letter openly upon your bosom! Mine burns in secret! Thou
little knowest what a relief it is, after the torment of a seven years’
cheat, to look into an eye that recognises me for what I am! Had I one
friend—or were it my worst enemy!—to whom, when sickened with the
praises of all other men, I could daily betake myself, and be known as the
vilest of all sinners, methinks my soul might keep itself alive thereby. Even
thus much of truth would save me! But now, it is all falsehood!—all
emptiness!—all death!”</p>
<p>Hester Prynne looked into his face, but hesitated to speak. Yet, uttering his
long-restrained emotions so vehemently as he did, his words here offered her
the very point of circumstances in which to interpose what she came to say. She
conquered her fears, and spoke:</p>
<p>“Such a friend as thou hast even now wished for,” said she,
“with whom to weep over thy sin, thou hast in me, the partner of
it!” Again she hesitated, but brought out the words with an
effort.—“Thou hast long had such an enemy, and dwellest with him,
under the same roof!”</p>
<p>The minister started to his feet, gasping for breath, and clutching at his
heart, as if he would have torn it out of his bosom.</p>
<p>“Ha! What sayest thou?” cried he. “An enemy! And under mine
own roof! What mean you?”</p>
<p>Hester Prynne was now fully sensible of the deep injury for which she was
responsible to this unhappy man, in permitting him to lie for so many years,
or, indeed, for a single moment, at the mercy of one whose purposes could not
be other than malevolent. The very contiguity of his enemy, beneath whatever
mask the latter might conceal himself, was enough to disturb the magnetic
sphere of a being so sensitive as Arthur Dimmesdale. There had been a period
when Hester was less alive to this consideration; or, perhaps, in the
misanthropy of her own trouble, she left the minister to bear what she might
picture to herself as a more tolerable doom. But of late, since the night of
his vigil, all her sympathies towards him had been both softened and
invigorated. She now read his heart more accurately. She doubted not that the
continual presence of Roger Chillingworth—the secret poison of his
malignity, infecting all the air about him—and his authorised
interference, as a physician, with the minister’s physical and spiritual
infirmities—that these bad opportunities had been turned to a cruel
purpose. By means of them, the sufferer’s conscience had been kept in an
irritated state, the tendency of which was, not to cure by wholesome pain, but
to disorganize and corrupt his spiritual being. Its result, on earth, could
hardly fail to be insanity, and hereafter, that eternal alienation from the
Good and True, of which madness is perhaps the earthly type.</p>
<p>Such was the ruin to which she had brought the man, once—nay, why should
we not speak it?—still so passionately loved! Hester felt that the
sacrifice of the clergyman’s good name, and death itself, as she had
already told Roger Chillingworth, would have been infinitely preferable to the
alternative which she had taken upon herself to choose. And now, rather than
have had this grievous wrong to confess, she would gladly have laid down on the
forest leaves, and died there, at Arthur Dimmesdale’s feet.</p>
<p>“Oh, Arthur!” cried she, “forgive me! In all things else, I
have striven to be true! Truth was the one virtue which I might have held fast,
and did hold fast, through all extremity; save when thy good—thy
life—thy fame—were put in question! Then I consented to a
deception. But a lie is never good, even though death threaten on the other
side! Dost thou not see what I would say? That old man!—the
physician!—he whom they call Roger Chillingworth!—he was my
husband!”</p>
<p>The minister looked at her for an instant, with all that violence of passion,
which—intermixed in more shapes than one with his higher, purer, softer
qualities—was, in fact, the portion of him which the devil claimed, and
through which he sought to win the rest. Never was there a blacker or a fiercer
frown than Hester now encountered. For the brief space that it lasted, it was a
dark transfiguration. But his character had been so much enfeebled by
suffering, that even its lower energies were incapable of more than a temporary
struggle. He sank down on the ground, and buried his face in his hands.</p>
<p>“I might have known it,” murmured he—“I did know it!
Was not the secret told me, in the natural recoil of my heart at the first
sight of him, and as often as I have seen him since? Why did I not understand?
Oh, Hester Prynne, thou little, little knowest all the horror of this thing!
And the shame!—the indelicacy!—the horrible ugliness of this
exposure of a sick and guilty heart to the very eye that would gloat over it!
Woman, woman, thou art accountable for this!—I cannot forgive
thee!”</p>
<p>“Thou shalt forgive me!” cried Hester, flinging herself on the
fallen leaves beside him. “Let God punish! Thou shalt forgive!”</p>
<p>With sudden and desperate tenderness she threw her arms around him, and pressed
his head against her bosom, little caring though his cheek rested on the
scarlet letter. He would have released himself, but strove in vain to do so.
Hester would not set him free, lest he should look her sternly in the face. All
the world had frowned on her—for seven long years had it frowned upon
this lonely woman—and still she bore it all, nor ever once turned away
her firm, sad eyes. Heaven, likewise, had frowned upon her, and she had not
died. But the frown of this pale, weak, sinful, and sorrow-stricken man was
what Hester could not bear, and live!</p>
<p>“Wilt thou yet forgive me?” she repeated, over and over again.
“Wilt thou not frown? Wilt thou forgive?”</p>
<p>“I do forgive you, Hester,” replied the minister at length, with a
deep utterance, out of an abyss of sadness, but no anger. “I freely
forgive you now. May God forgive us both. We are not, Hester, the worst sinners
in the world. There is one worse than even the polluted priest! That old
man’s revenge has been blacker than my sin. He has violated, in cold
blood, the sanctity of a human heart. Thou and I, Hester, never did so!”</p>
<p>“Never, never!” whispered she. “What we did had a
consecration of its own. We felt it so! We said so to each other. Hast thou
forgotten it?”</p>
<p>“Hush, Hester!” said Arthur Dimmesdale, rising from the ground.
“No; I have not forgotten!”</p>
<p>They sat down again, side by side, and hand clasped in hand, on the mossy trunk
of the fallen tree. Life had never brought them a gloomier hour; it was the
point whither their pathway had so long been tending, and darkening ever, as it
stole along—and yet it unclosed a charm that made them linger upon it,
and claim another, and another, and, after all, another moment. The forest was
obscure around them, and creaked with a blast that was passing through it. The
boughs were tossing heavily above their heads; while one solemn old tree
groaned dolefully to another, as if telling the sad story of the pair that sat
beneath, or constrained to forbode evil to come.</p>
<p>And yet they lingered. How dreary looked the forest-track that led backward to
the settlement, where Hester Prynne must take up again the burden of her
ignominy and the minister the hollow mockery of his good name! So they lingered
an instant longer. No golden light had ever been so precious as the gloom of
this dark forest. Here seen only by his eyes, the scarlet letter need not burn
into the bosom of the fallen woman! Here seen only by her eyes, Arthur
Dimmesdale, false to God and man, might be, for one moment true!</p>
<p>He started at a thought that suddenly occurred to him.</p>
<p>“Hester!” cried he, “here is a new horror! Roger
Chillingworth knows your purpose to reveal his true character. Will he
continue, then, to keep our secret? What will now be the course of his
revenge?”</p>
<p>“There is a strange secrecy in his nature,” replied Hester,
thoughtfully; “and it has grown upon him by the hidden practices of his
revenge. I deem it not likely that he will betray the secret. He will doubtless
seek other means of satiating his dark passion.”</p>
<p>“And I!—how am I to live longer, breathing the same air with this
deadly enemy?” exclaimed Arthur Dimmesdale, shrinking within himself, and
pressing his hand nervously against his heart—a gesture that had grown
involuntary with him. “Think for me, Hester! Thou art strong. Resolve for
me!”</p>
<p>“Thou must dwell no longer with this man,” said Hester, slowly and
firmly. “Thy heart must be no longer under his evil eye!”</p>
<p>“It were far worse than death!” replied the minister. “But
how to avoid it? What choice remains to me? Shall I lie down again on these
withered leaves, where I cast myself when thou didst tell me what he was? Must
I sink down there, and die at once?”</p>
<p>“Alas! what a ruin has befallen thee!” said Hester, with the tears
gushing into her eyes. “Wilt thou die for very weakness? There is no
other cause!”</p>
<p>“The judgment of God is on me,” answered the conscience-stricken
priest. “It is too mighty for me to struggle with!”</p>
<p>“Heaven would show mercy,” rejoined Hester, “hadst thou but
the strength to take advantage of it.”</p>
<p>“Be thou strong for me!” answered he. “Advise me what to
do.”</p>
<p>“Is the world, then, so narrow?” exclaimed Hester Prynne, fixing
her deep eyes on the minister’s, and instinctively exercising a magnetic
power over a spirit so shattered and subdued that it could hardly hold itself
erect. “Doth the universe lie within the compass of yonder town, which
only a little time ago was but a leaf-strewn desert, as lonely as this around
us? Whither leads yonder forest-track? Backward to the settlement, thou sayest!
Yes; but, onward, too! Deeper it goes, and deeper into the wilderness, less
plainly to be seen at every step; until some few miles hence the yellow leaves
will show no vestige of the white man’s tread. There thou art free! So
brief a journey would bring thee from a world where thou hast been most
wretched, to one where thou mayest still be happy! Is there not shade enough in
all this boundless forest to hide thy heart from the gaze of Roger
Chillingworth?”</p>
<p>“Yes, Hester; but only under the fallen leaves!” replied the
minister, with a sad smile.</p>
<p>“Then there is the broad pathway of the sea!” continued Hester.
“It brought thee hither. If thou so choose, it will bear thee back again.
In our native land, whether in some remote rural village, or in vast
London—or, surely, in Germany, in France, in pleasant Italy—thou
wouldst be beyond his power and knowledge! And what hast thou to do with all
these iron men, and their opinions? They have kept thy better part in bondage
too long already!”</p>
<p>“It cannot be!” answered the minister, listening as if he were
called upon to realise a dream. “I am powerless to go. Wretched and
sinful as I am, I have had no other thought than to drag on my earthly
existence in the sphere where Providence hath placed me. Lost as my own soul
is, I would still do what I may for other human souls! I dare not quit my post,
though an unfaithful sentinel, whose sure reward is death and dishonour, when
his dreary watch shall come to an end!”</p>
<p>“Thou art crushed under this seven years’ weight of misery,”
replied Hester, fervently resolved to buoy him up with her own energy.
“But thou shalt leave it all behind thee! It shall not cumber thy steps,
as thou treadest along the forest-path: neither shalt thou freight the ship
with it, if thou prefer to cross the sea. Leave this wreck and ruin here where
it hath happened. Meddle no more with it! Begin all anew! Hast thou exhausted
possibility in the failure of this one trial? Not so! The future is yet full of
trial and success. There is happiness to be enjoyed! There is good to be done!
Exchange this false life of thine for a true one. Be, if thy spirit summon thee
to such a mission, the teacher and apostle of the red men. Or, as is more thy
nature, be a scholar and a sage among the wisest and the most renowned of the
cultivated world. Preach! Write! Act! Do anything, save to lie down and die!
Give up this name of Arthur Dimmesdale, and make thyself another, and a high
one, such as thou canst wear without fear or shame. Why shouldst thou tarry so
much as one other day in the torments that have so gnawed into thy life? that
have made thee feeble to will and to do? that will leave thee powerless even to
repent? Up, and away!”</p>
<p>“Oh, Hester!” cried Arthur Dimmesdale, in whose eyes a fitful
light, kindled by her enthusiasm, flashed up and died away, “thou tellest
of running a race to a man whose knees are tottering beneath him! I must die
here! There is not the strength or courage left me to venture into the wide,
strange, difficult world alone!”</p>
<p>It was the last expression of the despondency of a broken spirit. He lacked
energy to grasp the better fortune that seemed within his reach.</p>
<p>He repeated the word—“Alone, Hester!”</p>
<p>“Thou shall not go alone!” answered she, in a deep whisper. Then,
all was spoken!</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap18"></SPAN>XVIII.<br/> A FLOOD OF SUNSHINE</h2>
<p>Arthur Dimmesdale gazed into Hester’s face with a look in which hope and
joy shone out, indeed, but with fear betwixt them, and a kind of horror at her
boldness, who had spoken what he vaguely hinted at, but dared not speak.</p>
<p>But Hester Prynne, with a mind of native courage and activity, and for so long
a period not merely estranged, but outlawed from society, had habituated
herself to such latitude of speculation as was altogether foreign to the
clergyman. She had wandered, without rule or guidance, in a moral wilderness,
as vast, as intricate, and shadowy as the untamed forest, amid the gloom of
which they were now holding a colloquy that was to decide their fate. Her
intellect and heart had their home, as it were, in desert places, where she
roamed as freely as the wild Indian in his woods. For years past she had looked
from this estranged point of view at human institutions, and whatever priests
or legislators had established; criticising all with hardly more reverence than
the Indian would feel for the clerical band, the judicial robe, the pillory,
the gallows, the fireside, or the church. The tendency of her fate and fortunes
had been to set her free. The scarlet letter was her passport into regions
where other women dared not tread. Shame, Despair, Solitude! These had been her
teachers—stern and wild ones—and they had made her strong, but
taught her much amiss.</p>
<p>The minister, on the other hand, had never gone through an experience
calculated to lead him beyond the scope of generally received laws; although,
in a single instance, he had so fearfully transgressed one of the most sacred
of them. But this had been a sin of passion, not of principle, nor even
purpose. Since that wretched epoch, he had watched with morbid zeal and
minuteness, not his acts—for those it was easy to arrange—but each
breath of emotion, and his every thought. At the head of the social system, as
the clergymen of that day stood, he was only the more trammelled by its
regulations, its principles, and even its prejudices. As a priest, the
framework of his order inevitably hemmed him in. As a man who had once sinned,
but who kept his conscience all alive and painfully sensitive by the fretting
of an unhealed wound, he might have been supposed safer within the line of
virtue than if he had never sinned at all.</p>
<p>Thus we seem to see that, as regarded Hester Prynne, the whole seven years of
outlaw and ignominy had been little other than a preparation for this very
hour. But Arthur Dimmesdale! Were such a man once more to fall, what plea could
be urged in extenuation of his crime? None; unless it avail him somewhat that
he was broken down by long and exquisite suffering; that his mind was darkened
and confused by the very remorse which harrowed it; that, between fleeing as an
avowed criminal, and remaining as a hypocrite, conscience might find it hard to
strike the balance; that it was human to avoid the peril of death and infamy,
and the inscrutable machinations of an enemy; that, finally, to this poor
pilgrim, on his dreary and desert path, faint, sick, miserable, there appeared
a glimpse of human affection and sympathy, a new life, and a true one, in
exchange for the heavy doom which he was now expiating. And be the stern and
sad truth spoken, that the breach which guilt has once made into the human soul
is never, in this mortal state, repaired. It may be watched and guarded, so
that the enemy shall not force his way again into the citadel, and might even
in his subsequent assaults, select some other avenue, in preference to that
where he had formerly succeeded. But there is still the ruined wall, and near
it the stealthy tread of the foe that would win over again his unforgotten
triumph.</p>
<p>The struggle, if there were one, need not be described. Let it suffice that the
clergyman resolved to flee, and not alone.</p>
<p>“If in all these past seven years,” thought he, “I could
recall one instant of peace or hope, I would yet endure, for the sake of that
earnest of Heaven’s mercy. But now—since I am irrevocably
doomed—wherefore should I not snatch the solace allowed to the condemned
culprit before his execution? Or, if this be the path to a better life, as
Hester would persuade me, I surely give up no fairer prospect by pursuing it!
Neither can I any longer live without her companionship; so powerful is she to
sustain—so tender to soothe! O Thou to whom I dare not lift mine eyes,
wilt Thou yet pardon me?”</p>
<p>“Thou wilt go!” said Hester calmly, as he met her glance.</p>
<p>The decision once made, a glow of strange enjoyment threw its flickering
brightness over the trouble of his breast. It was the exhilarating
effect—upon a prisoner just escaped from the dungeon of his own
heart—of breathing the wild, free atmosphere of an unredeemed,
unchristianised, lawless region. His spirit rose, as it were, with a bound, and
attained a nearer prospect of the sky, than throughout all the misery which had
kept him grovelling on the earth. Of a deeply religious temperament, there was
inevitably a tinge of the devotional in his mood.</p>
<p>“Do I feel joy again?” cried he, wondering at himself.
“Methought the germ of it was dead in me! Oh, Hester, thou art my better
angel! I seem to have flung myself—sick, sin-stained, and
sorrow-blackened—down upon these forest leaves, and to have risen up all
made anew, and with new powers to glorify Him that hath been merciful! This is
already the better life! Why did we not find it sooner?”</p>
<p>“Let us not look back,” answered Hester Prynne. “The past is
gone! Wherefore should we linger upon it now? See! With this symbol I undo it
all, and make it as if it had never been!”</p>
<p>So speaking, she undid the clasp that fastened the scarlet letter, and, taking
it from her bosom, threw it to a distance among the withered leaves. The mystic
token alighted on the hither verge of the stream. With a hand’s-breadth
further flight, it would have fallen into the water, and have given the little
brook another woe to carry onward, besides the unintelligible tale which it
still kept murmuring about. But there lay the embroidered letter, glittering
like a lost jewel, which some ill-fated wanderer might pick up, and thenceforth
be haunted by strange phantoms of guilt, sinkings of the heart, and
unaccountable misfortune.</p>
<p>The stigma gone, Hester heaved a long, deep sigh, in which the burden of shame
and anguish departed from her spirit. O exquisite relief! She had not known the
weight until she felt the freedom! By another impulse, she took off the formal
cap that confined her hair, and down it fell upon her shoulders, dark and rich,
with at once a shadow and a light in its abundance, and imparting the charm of
softness to her features. There played around her mouth, and beamed out of her
eyes, a radiant and tender smile, that seemed gushing from the very heart of
womanhood. A crimson flush was glowing on her cheek, that had been long so
pale. Her sex, her youth, and the whole richness of her beauty, came back from
what men call the irrevocable past, and clustered themselves with her maiden
hope, and a happiness before unknown, within the magic circle of this hour.
And, as if the gloom of the earth and sky had been but the effluence of these
two mortal hearts, it vanished with their sorrow. All at once, as with a sudden
smile of heaven, forth burst the sunshine, pouring a very flood into the
obscure forest, gladdening each green leaf, transmuting the yellow fallen ones
to gold, and gleaming adown the gray trunks of the solemn trees. The objects
that had made a shadow hitherto, embodied the brightness now. The course of the
little brook might be traced by its merry gleam afar into the wood’s
heart of mystery, which had become a mystery of joy.</p>
<p>Such was the sympathy of Nature—that wild, heathen Nature of the forest,
never subjugated by human law, nor illumined by higher truth—with the
bliss of these two spirits! Love, whether newly-born, or aroused from a
death-like slumber, must always create a sunshine, filling the heart so full of
radiance, that it overflows upon the outward world. Had the forest still kept
its gloom, it would have been bright in Hester’s eyes, and bright in
Arthur Dimmesdale’s!</p>
<p>Hester looked at him with a thrill of another joy.</p>
<p>“Thou must know Pearl!” said she. “Our little Pearl! Thou
hast seen her—yes, I know it!—but thou wilt see her now with other
eyes. She is a strange child! I hardly comprehend her! But thou wilt love her
dearly, as I do, and wilt advise me how to deal with her!”</p>
<p>“Dost thou think the child will be glad to know me?” asked the
minister, somewhat uneasily. “I have long shrunk from children, because
they often show a distrust—a backwardness to be familiar with me. I have
even been afraid of little Pearl!”</p>
<p>“Ah, that was sad!” answered the mother. “But she will love
thee dearly, and thou her. She is not far off. I will call her. Pearl!
Pearl!”</p>
<p>“I see the child,” observed the minister. “Yonder she is,
standing in a streak of sunshine, a good way off, on the other side of the
brook. So thou thinkest the child will love me?”</p>
<p>Hester smiled, and again called to Pearl, who was visible at some distance, as
the minister had described her, like a bright-apparelled vision in a sunbeam,
which fell down upon her through an arch of boughs. The ray quivered to and
fro, making her figure dim or distinct—now like a real child, now like a
child’s spirit—as the splendour went and came again. She heard her
mother’s voice, and approached slowly through the forest.</p>
<p>Pearl had not found the hour pass wearisomely while her mother sat talking with
the clergyman. The great black forest—stern as it showed itself to those
who brought the guilt and troubles of the world into its bosom—became the
playmate of the lonely infant, as well as it knew how. Sombre as it was, it put
on the kindest of its moods to welcome her. It offered her the
partridge-berries, the growth of the preceding autumn, but ripening only in the
spring, and now red as drops of blood upon the withered leaves. These Pearl
gathered, and was pleased with their wild flavour. The small denizens of the
wilderness hardly took pains to move out of her path. A partridge, indeed, with
a brood of ten behind her, ran forward threateningly, but soon repented of her
fierceness, and clucked to her young ones not to be afraid. A pigeon, alone on
a low branch, allowed Pearl to come beneath, and uttered a sound as much of
greeting as alarm. A squirrel, from the lofty depths of his domestic tree,
chattered either in anger or merriment—for the squirrel is such a
choleric and humorous little personage, that it is hard to distinguish between
his moods—so he chattered at the child, and flung down a nut upon her
head. It was a last year’s nut, and already gnawed by his sharp tooth. A
fox, startled from his sleep by her light footstep on the leaves, looked
inquisitively at Pearl, as doubting whether it were better to steal off, or
renew his nap on the same spot. A wolf, it is said—but here the tale has
surely lapsed into the improbable—came up and smelt of Pearl’s
robe, and offered his savage head to be patted by her hand. The truth seems to
be, however, that the mother-forest, and these wild things which it nourished,
all recognised a kindred wilderness in the human child.</p>
<p>And she was gentler here than in the grassy-margined streets of the settlement,
or in her mother’s cottage. The flowers appeared to know it, and one and
another whispered as she passed, “Adorn thyself with me, thou beautiful
child, adorn thyself with me!”—and, to please them, Pearl gathered
the violets, and anemones, and columbines, and some twigs of the freshest
green, which the old trees held down before her eyes. With these she decorated
her hair and her young waist, and became a nymph child, or an infant dryad, or
whatever else was in closest sympathy with the antique wood. In such guise had
Pearl adorned herself, when she heard her mother’s voice, and came slowly
back.</p>
<p>Slowly—for she saw the clergyman!</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap19"></SPAN>XIX.<br/> THE CHILD AT THE BROOKSIDE</h2>
<p>“Thou wilt love her dearly,” repeated Hester Prynne, as she and the
minister sat watching little Pearl. “Dost thou not think her beautiful?
And see with what natural skill she has made those simple flowers adorn her!
Had she gathered pearls, and diamonds, and rubies in the wood, they could not
have become her better! She is a splendid child! But I know whose brow she
has!”</p>
<p>“Dost thou know, Hester,” said Arthur Dimmesdale, with an unquiet
smile, “that this dear child, tripping about always at thy side, hath
caused me many an alarm? Methought—oh, Hester, what a thought is that,
and how terrible to dread it!—that my own features were partly repeated
in her face, and so strikingly that the world might see them! But she is mostly
thine!”</p>
<p>“No, no! Not mostly!” answered the mother, with a tender smile.
“A little longer, and thou needest not to be afraid to trace whose child
she is. But how strangely beautiful she looks with those wild flowers in her
hair! It is as if one of the fairies, whom we left in dear old England, had
decked her out to meet us.”</p>
<p>It was with a feeling which neither of them had ever before experienced, that
they sat and watched Pearl’s slow advance. In her was visible the tie
that united them. She had been offered to the world, these seven past years, as
the living hieroglyphic, in which was revealed the secret they so darkly sought
to hide—all written in this symbol—all plainly manifest—had
there been a prophet or magician skilled to read the character of flame! And
Pearl was the oneness of their being. Be the foregone evil what it might, how
could they doubt that their earthly lives and future destinies were conjoined
when they beheld at once the material union, and the spiritual idea, in whom
they met, and were to dwell immortally together; thoughts like these—and
perhaps other thoughts, which they did not acknowledge or define—threw an
awe about the child as she came onward.</p>
<p>“Let her see nothing strange—no passion or eagerness—in thy
way of accosting her,” whispered Hester. “Our Pearl is a fitful and
fantastic little elf sometimes. Especially she is generally intolerant of
emotion, when she does not fully comprehend the why and wherefore. But the
child hath strong affections! She loves me, and will love thee!”</p>
<p>“Thou canst not think,” said the minister, glancing aside at Hester
Prynne, “how my heart dreads this interview, and yearns for it! But, in
truth, as I already told thee, children are not readily won to be familiar with
me. They will not climb my knee, nor prattle in my ear, nor answer to my smile,
but stand apart, and eye me strangely. Even little babes, when I take them in
my arms, weep bitterly. Yet Pearl, twice in her little lifetime, hath been kind
to me! The first time—thou knowest it well! The last was when thou ledst
her with thee to the house of yonder stern old Governor.”</p>
<p>“And thou didst plead so bravely in her behalf and mine!” answered
the mother. “I remember it; and so shall little Pearl. Fear nothing. She
may be strange and shy at first, but will soon learn to love thee!”</p>
<p>By this time Pearl had reached the margin of the brook, and stood on the
further side, gazing silently at Hester and the clergyman, who still sat
together on the mossy tree-trunk waiting to receive her. Just where she had
paused, the brook chanced to form a pool so smooth and quiet that it reflected
a perfect image of her little figure, with all the brilliant picturesqueness of
her beauty, in its adornment of flowers and wreathed foliage, but more refined
and spiritualized than the reality. This image, so nearly identical with the
living Pearl, seemed to communicate somewhat of its own shadowy and intangible
quality to the child herself. It was strange, the way in which Pearl stood,
looking so steadfastly at them through the dim medium of the forest gloom,
herself, meanwhile, all glorified with a ray of sunshine, that was attracted
thitherward as by a certain sympathy. In the brook beneath stood another
child—another and the same—with likewise its ray of golden light.
Hester felt herself, in some indistinct and tantalizing manner, estranged from
Pearl, as if the child, in her lonely ramble through the forest, had strayed
out of the sphere in which she and her mother dwelt together, and was now
vainly seeking to return to it.</p>
<p>There were both truth and error in the impression; the child and mother were
estranged, but through Hester’s fault, not Pearl’s. Since the
latter rambled from her side, another inmate had been admitted within the
circle of the mother’s feelings, and so modified the aspect of them all,
that Pearl, the returning wanderer, could not find her wonted place, and hardly
knew where she was.</p>
<p>“I have a strange fancy,” observed the sensitive minister,
“that this brook is the boundary between two worlds, and that thou canst
never meet thy Pearl again. Or is she an elfish spirit, who, as the legends of
our childhood taught us, is forbidden to cross a running stream? Pray hasten
her, for this delay has already imparted a tremor to my nerves.”</p>
<p>“Come, dearest child!” said Hester encouragingly, and stretching
out both her arms. “How slow thou art! When hast thou been so sluggish
before now? Here is a friend of mine, who must be thy friend also. Thou wilt
have twice as much love henceforward as thy mother alone could give thee! Leap
across the brook and come to us. Thou canst leap like a young deer!”</p>
<p>Pearl, without responding in any manner to these honey-sweet expressions,
remained on the other side of the brook. Now she fixed her bright wild eyes on
her mother, now on the minister, and now included them both in the same glance,
as if to detect and explain to herself the relation which they bore to one
another. For some unaccountable reason, as Arthur Dimmesdale felt the
child’s eyes upon himself, his hand—with that gesture so habitual
as to have become involuntary—stole over his heart. At length, assuming a
singular air of authority, Pearl stretched out her hand, with the small
forefinger extended, and pointing evidently towards her mother’s breast.
And beneath, in the mirror of the brook, there was the flower-girdled and sunny
image of little Pearl, pointing her small forefinger too.</p>
<p>“Thou strange child! why dost thou not come to me?” exclaimed
Hester.</p>
<p>Pearl still pointed with her forefinger, and a frown gathered on her
brow—the more impressive from the childish, the almost baby-like aspect
of the features that conveyed it. As her mother still kept beckoning to her,
and arraying her face in a holiday suit of unaccustomed smiles, the child
stamped her foot with a yet more imperious look and gesture. In the brook,
again, was the fantastic beauty of the image, with its reflected frown, its
pointed finger, and imperious gesture, giving emphasis to the aspect of little
Pearl.</p>
<p>“Hasten, Pearl, or I shall be angry with thee!” cried Hester
Prynne, who, however, inured to such behaviour on the elf-child’s part at
other seasons, was naturally anxious for a more seemly deportment now.
“Leap across the brook, naughty child, and run hither! Else I must come
to thee!”</p>
<p>But Pearl, not a whit startled at her mother’s threats any more than
mollified by her entreaties, now suddenly burst into a fit of passion,
gesticulating violently, and throwing her small figure into the most
extravagant contortions. She accompanied this wild outbreak with piercing
shrieks, which the woods reverberated on all sides, so that, alone as she was
in her childish and unreasonable wrath, it seemed as if a hidden multitude were
lending her their sympathy and encouragement. Seen in the brook once more was
the shadowy wrath of Pearl’s image, crowned and girdled with flowers, but
stamping its foot, wildly gesticulating, and, in the midst of all, still
pointing its small forefinger at Hester’s bosom.</p>
<p>“I see what ails the child,” whispered Hester to the clergyman, and
turning pale in spite of a strong effort to conceal her trouble and annoyance,
“Children will not abide any, the slightest, change in the accustomed
aspect of things that are daily before their eyes. Pearl misses something that
she has always seen me wear!”</p>
<p>“I pray you,” answered the minister, “if thou hast any means
of pacifying the child, do it forthwith! Save it were the cankered wrath of an
old witch like Mistress Hibbins,” added he, attempting to smile, “I
know nothing that I would not sooner encounter than this passion in a child. In
Pearl’s young beauty, as in the wrinkled witch, it has a preternatural
effect. Pacify her if thou lovest me!”</p>
<p>Hester turned again towards Pearl with a crimson blush upon her cheek, a
conscious glance aside at the clergyman, and then a heavy sigh, while, even
before she had time to speak, the blush yielded to a deadly pallor.</p>
<p>“Pearl,” said she sadly, “look down at thy feet!
There!—before thee!—on the hither side of the brook!”</p>
<p>The child turned her eyes to the point indicated, and there lay the scarlet
letter so close upon the margin of the stream that the gold embroidery was
reflected in it.</p>
<p>“Bring it hither!” said Hester.</p>
<p>“Come thou and take it up!” answered Pearl.</p>
<p>“Was ever such a child!” observed Hester aside to the minister.
“Oh, I have much to tell thee about her! But, in very truth, she is right
as regards this hateful token. I must bear its torture yet a little
longer—only a few days longer—until we shall have left this region,
and look back hither as to a land which we have dreamed of. The forest cannot
hide it! The mid-ocean shall take it from my hand, and swallow it up for
ever!”</p>
<p>With these words she advanced to the margin of the brook, took up the scarlet
letter, and fastened it again into her bosom. Hopefully, but a moment ago, as
Hester had spoken of drowning it in the deep sea, there was a sense of
inevitable doom upon her as she thus received back this deadly symbol from the
hand of fate. She had flung it into infinite space! she had drawn an
hour’s free breath! and here again was the scarlet misery glittering on
the old spot! So it ever is, whether thus typified or no, that an evil deed
invests itself with the character of doom. Hester next gathered up the heavy
tresses of her hair and confined them beneath her cap. As if there were a
withering spell in the sad letter, her beauty, the warmth and richness of her
womanhood, departed like fading sunshine, and a gray shadow seemed to fall
across her.</p>
<p>When the dreary change was wrought, she extended her hand to Pearl.</p>
<p>“Dost thou know thy mother now, child?”, asked she, reproachfully,
but with a subdued tone. “Wilt thou come across the brook, and own thy
mother, now that she has her shame upon her—now that she is sad?”</p>
<p>“Yes; now I will!” answered the child, bounding across the brook,
and clasping Hester in her arms “Now thou art my mother indeed! and I am
thy little Pearl!”</p>
<p>In a mood of tenderness that was not usual with her, she drew down her
mother’s head, and kissed her brow and both her cheeks. But then—by
a kind of necessity that always impelled this child to alloy whatever comfort
she might chance to give with a throb of anguish—Pearl put up her mouth
and kissed the scarlet letter, too.</p>
<p>“That was not kind!” said Hester. “When thou hast shown me a
little love, thou mockest me!”</p>
<p>“Why doth the minister sit yonder?” asked Pearl.</p>
<p>“He waits to welcome thee,” replied her mother. “Come thou,
and entreat his blessing! He loves thee, my little Pearl, and loves thy mother,
too. Wilt thou not love him? Come he longs to greet thee!”</p>
<p>“Doth he love us?” said Pearl, looking up with acute intelligence
into her mother’s face. “Will he go back with us, hand in hand, we
three together, into the town?”</p>
<p>“Not now, my child,” answered Hester. “But in days to come he
will walk hand in hand with us. We will have a home and fireside of our own;
and thou shalt sit upon his knee; and he will teach thee many things, and love
thee dearly. Thou wilt love him—wilt thou not?”</p>
<p>“And will he always keep his hand over his heart?” inquired Pearl.</p>
<p>“Foolish child, what a question is that!” exclaimed her mother.
“Come, and ask his blessing!”</p>
<p>But, whether influenced by the jealousy that seems instinctive with every
petted child towards a dangerous rival, or from whatever caprice of her
freakish nature, Pearl would show no favour to the clergyman. It was only by an
exertion of force that her mother brought her up to him, hanging back, and
manifesting her reluctance by odd grimaces; of which, ever since her babyhood,
she had possessed a singular variety, and could transform her mobile
physiognomy into a series of different aspects, with a new mischief in them,
each and all. The minister—painfully embarrassed, but hoping that a kiss
might prove a talisman to admit him into the child’s kindlier
regards—bent forward, and impressed one on her brow. Hereupon, Pearl
broke away from her mother, and, running to the brook, stooped over it, and
bathed her forehead, until the unwelcome kiss was quite washed off and diffused
through a long lapse of the gliding water. She then remained apart, silently
watching Hester and the clergyman; while they talked together and made such
arrangements as were suggested by their new position and the purposes soon to
be fulfilled.</p>
<p>And now this fateful interview had come to a close. The dell was to be left in
solitude among its dark, old trees, which, with their multitudinous tongues,
would whisper long of what had passed there, and no mortal be the wiser. And
the melancholy brook would add this other tale to the mystery with which its
little heart was already overburdened, and whereof it still kept up a murmuring
babble, with not a whit more cheerfulness of tone than for ages heretofore.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap20"></SPAN>XX.<br/> THE MINISTER IN A MAZE</h2>
<p>As the minister departed, in advance of Hester Prynne and little Pearl, he
threw a backward glance, half expecting that he should discover only some
faintly traced features or outline of the mother and the child, slowly fading
into the twilight of the woods. So great a vicissitude in his life could not at
once be received as real. But there was Hester, clad in her gray robe, still
standing beside the tree-trunk, which some blast had overthrown a long
antiquity ago, and which time had ever since been covering with moss, so that
these two fated ones, with earth’s heaviest burden on them, might there
sit down together, and find a single hour’s rest and solace. And there
was Pearl, too, lightly dancing from the margin of the brook—now that the
intrusive third person was gone—and taking her old place by her
mother’s side. So the minister had not fallen asleep and dreamed!</p>
<p>In order to free his mind from this indistinctness and duplicity of impression,
which vexed it with a strange disquietude, he recalled and more thoroughly
defined the plans which Hester and himself had sketched for their departure. It
had been determined between them that the Old World, with its crowds and
cities, offered them a more eligible shelter and concealment than the wilds of
New England or all America, with its alternatives of an Indian wigwam, or the
few settlements of Europeans scattered thinly along the sea-board. Not to speak
of the clergyman’s health, so inadequate to sustain the hardships of a
forest life, his native gifts, his culture, and his entire development would
secure him a home only in the midst of civilization and refinement; the higher
the state the more delicately adapted to it the man. In furtherance of this
choice, it so happened that a ship lay in the harbour; one of those
unquestionable cruisers, frequent at that day, which, without being absolutely
outlaws of the deep, yet roamed over its surface with a remarkable
irresponsibility of character. This vessel had recently arrived from the
Spanish Main, and within three days’ time would sail for Bristol. Hester
Prynne—whose vocation, as a self-enlisted Sister of Charity, had brought
her acquainted with the captain and crew—could take upon herself to
secure the passage of two individuals and a child with all the secrecy which
circumstances rendered more than desirable.</p>
<p>The minister had inquired of Hester, with no little interest, the precise time
at which the vessel might be expected to depart. It would probably be on the
fourth day from the present. “This is most fortunate!” he had then
said to himself. Now, why the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale considered it so very
fortunate we hesitate to reveal. Nevertheless—to hold nothing back from
the reader—it was because, on the third day from the present, he was to
preach the Election Sermon; and, as such an occasion formed an honourable epoch
in the life of a New England Clergyman, he could not have chanced upon a more
suitable mode and time of terminating his professional career. “At least,
they shall say of me,” thought this exemplary man, “that I leave no
public duty unperformed or ill-performed!” Sad, indeed, that an
introspection so profound and acute as this poor minister’s should be so
miserably deceived! We have had, and may still have, worse things to tell of
him; but none, we apprehend, so pitiably weak; no evidence, at once so slight
and irrefragable, of a subtle disease that had long since begun to eat into the
real substance of his character. No man, for any considerable period, can wear
one face to himself and another to the multitude, without finally getting
bewildered as to which may be the true.</p>
<p>The excitement of Mr. Dimmesdale’s feelings as he returned from his
interview with Hester, lent him unaccustomed physical energy, and hurried him
townward at a rapid pace. The pathway among the woods seemed wilder, more
uncouth with its rude natural obstacles, and less trodden by the foot of man,
than he remembered it on his outward journey. But he leaped across the plashy
places, thrust himself through the clinging underbrush, climbed the ascent,
plunged into the hollow, and overcame, in short, all the difficulties of the
track, with an unweariable activity that astonished him. He could not but
recall how feebly, and with what frequent pauses for breath he had toiled over
the same ground, only two days before. As he drew near the town, he took an
impression of change from the series of familiar objects that presented
themselves. It seemed not yesterday, not one, not two, but many days, or even
years ago, since he had quitted them. There, indeed, was each former trace of
the street, as he remembered it, and all the peculiarities of the houses, with
the due multitude of gable-peaks, and a weather-cock at every point where his
memory suggested one. Not the less, however, came this importunately obtrusive
sense of change. The same was true as regarded the acquaintances whom he met,
and all the well-known shapes of human life, about the little town. They looked
neither older nor younger now; the beards of the aged were no whiter, nor could
the creeping babe of yesterday walk on his feet today; it was impossible to
describe in what respect they differed from the individuals on whom he had so
recently bestowed a parting glance; and yet the minister’s deepest sense
seemed to inform him of their mutability. A similar impression struck him most
remarkably as he passed under the walls of his own church. The edifice had so
very strange, and yet so familiar an aspect, that Mr. Dimmesdale’s mind
vibrated between two ideas; either that he had seen it only in a dream
hitherto, or that he was merely dreaming about it now.</p>
<p>This phenomenon, in the various shapes which it assumed, indicated no external
change, but so sudden and important a change in the spectator of the familiar
scene, that the intervening space of a single day had operated on his
consciousness like the lapse of years. The minister’s own will, and
Hester’s will, and the fate that grew between them, had wrought this
transformation. It was the same town as heretofore, but the same minister
returned not from the forest. He might have said to the friends who greeted
him—“I am not the man for whom you take me! I left him yonder in
the forest, withdrawn into a secret dell, by a mossy tree trunk, and near a
melancholy brook! Go, seek your minister, and see if his emaciated figure, his
thin cheek, his white, heavy, pain-wrinkled brow, be not flung down there, like
a cast-off garment!” His friends, no doubt, would still have insisted
with him—“Thou art thyself the man!” but the error would have
been their own, not his.</p>
<p>Before Mr. Dimmesdale reached home, his inner man gave him other evidences of a
revolution in the sphere of thought and feeling. In truth, nothing short of a
total change of dynasty and moral code, in that interior kingdom, was adequate
to account for the impulses now communicated to the unfortunate and startled
minister. At every step he was incited to do some strange, wild, wicked thing
or other, with a sense that it would be at once involuntary and intentional, in
spite of himself, yet growing out of a profounder self than that which opposed
the impulse. For instance, he met one of his own deacons. The good old man
addressed him with the paternal affection and patriarchal privilege which his
venerable age, his upright and holy character, and his station in the church,
entitled him to use and, conjoined with this, the deep, almost worshipping
respect, which the minister’s professional and private claims alike
demanded. Never was there a more beautiful example of how the majesty of age
and wisdom may comport with the obeisance and respect enjoined upon it, as from
a lower social rank, and inferior order of endowment, towards a higher. Now,
during a conversation of some two or three moments between the Reverend Mr.
Dimmesdale and this excellent and hoary-bearded deacon, it was only by the most
careful self-control that the former could refrain from uttering certain
blasphemous suggestions that rose into his mind, respecting the
communion-supper. He absolutely trembled and turned pale as ashes, lest his
tongue should wag itself in utterance of these horrible matters, and plead his
own consent for so doing, without his having fairly given it. And, even with
this terror in his heart, he could hardly avoid laughing, to imagine how the
sanctified old patriarchal deacon would have been petrified by his
minister’s impiety.</p>
<p>Again, another incident of the same nature. Hurrying along the street, the
Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale encountered the eldest female member of his church, a
most pious and exemplary old dame, poor, widowed, lonely, and with a heart as
full of reminiscences about her dead husband and children, and her dead friends
of long ago, as a burial-ground is full of storied gravestones. Yet all this,
which would else have been such heavy sorrow, was made almost a solemn joy to
her devout old soul, by religious consolations and the truths of Scripture,
wherewith she had fed herself continually for more than thirty years. And since
Mr. Dimmesdale had taken her in charge, the good grandam’s chief earthly
comfort—which, unless it had been likewise a heavenly comfort, could have
been none at all—was to meet her pastor, whether casually, or of set
purpose, and be refreshed with a word of warm, fragrant, heaven-breathing
Gospel truth, from his beloved lips, into her dulled, but rapturously attentive
ear. But, on this occasion, up to the moment of putting his lips to the old
woman’s ear, Mr. Dimmesdale, as the great enemy of souls would have it,
could recall no text of Scripture, nor aught else, except a brief, pithy, and,
as it then appeared to him, unanswerable argument against the immortality of
the human soul. The instilment thereof into her mind would probably have caused
this aged sister to drop down dead, at once, as by the effect of an intensely
poisonous infusion. What he really did whisper, the minister could never
afterwards recollect. There was, perhaps, a fortunate disorder in his
utterance, which failed to impart any distinct idea to the good widow’s
comprehension, or which Providence interpreted after a method of its own.
Assuredly, as the minister looked back, he beheld an expression of divine
gratitude and ecstasy that seemed like the shine of the celestial city on her
face, so wrinkled and ashy pale.</p>
<p>Again, a third instance. After parting from the old church member, he met the
youngest sister of them all. It was a maiden newly-won—and won by the
Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale’s own sermon, on the Sabbath after his
vigil—to barter the transitory pleasures of the world for the heavenly
hope that was to assume brighter substance as life grew dark around her, and
which would gild the utter gloom with final glory. She was fair and pure as a
lily that had bloomed in Paradise. The minister knew well that he was himself
enshrined within the stainless sanctity of her heart, which hung its snowy
curtains about his image, imparting to religion the warmth of love, and to love
a religious purity. Satan, that afternoon, had surely led the poor young girl
away from her mother’s side, and thrown her into the pathway of this
sorely tempted, or—shall we not rather say?—this lost and desperate
man. As she drew nigh, the arch-fiend whispered him to condense into small
compass, and drop into her tender bosom a germ of evil that would be sure to
blossom darkly soon, and bear black fruit betimes. Such was his sense of power
over this virgin soul, trusting him as she did, that the minister felt potent
to blight all the field of innocence with but one wicked look, and develop all
its opposite with but a word. So—with a mightier struggle than he had yet
sustained—he held his Geneva cloak before his face, and hurried onward,
making no sign of recognition, and leaving the young sister to digest his
rudeness as she might. She ransacked her conscience—which was full of
harmless little matters, like her pocket or her work-bag—and took herself
to task, poor thing! for a thousand imaginary faults, and went about her
household duties with swollen eyelids the next morning.</p>
<p>Before the minister had time to celebrate his victory over this last
temptation, he was conscious of another impulse, more ludicrous, and almost as
horrible. It was—we blush to tell it—it was to stop short in the
road, and teach some very wicked words to a knot of little Puritan children who
were playing there, and had but just begun to talk. Denying himself this freak,
as unworthy of his cloth, he met a drunken seaman, one of the ship’s crew
from the Spanish Main. And here, since he had so valiantly forborne all other
wickedness, poor Mr. Dimmesdale longed at least to shake hands with the tarry
blackguard, and recreate himself with a few improper jests, such as dissolute
sailors so abound with, and a volley of good, round, solid, satisfactory, and
heaven-defying oaths! It was not so much a better principle, as partly his
natural good taste, and still more his buckramed habit of clerical decorum,
that carried him safely through the latter crisis.</p>
<p>“What is it that haunts and tempts me thus?” cried the minister to
himself, at length, pausing in the street, and striking his hand against his
forehead.</p>
<p>“Am I mad? or am I given over utterly to the fiend? Did I make a contract
with him in the forest, and sign it with my blood? And does he now summon me to
its fulfilment, by suggesting the performance of every wickedness which his
most foul imagination can conceive?”</p>
<p>At the moment when the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale thus communed with himself, and
struck his forehead with his hand, old Mistress Hibbins, the reputed
witch-lady, is said to have been passing by. She made a very grand appearance,
having on a high head-dress, a rich gown of velvet, and a ruff done up with the
famous yellow starch, of which Anne Turner, her especial friend, had taught her
the secret, before this last good lady had been hanged for Sir Thomas
Overbury’s murder. Whether the witch had read the minister’s
thoughts or no, she came to a full stop, looked shrewdly into his face, smiled
craftily, and—though little given to converse with clergymen—began
a conversation.</p>
<p>“So, reverend sir, you have made a visit into the forest,” observed
the witch-lady, nodding her high head-dress at him. “The next time I pray
you to allow me only a fair warning, and I shall be proud to bear you company.
Without taking overmuch upon myself my good word will go far towards gaining
any strange gentleman a fair reception from yonder potentate you wot of.”</p>
<p>“I profess, madam,” answered the clergyman, with a grave obeisance,
such as the lady’s rank demanded, and his own good breeding made
imperative—“I profess, on my conscience and character, that I am
utterly bewildered as touching the purport of your words! I went not into the
forest to seek a potentate, neither do I, at any future time, design a visit
thither, with a view to gaining the favour of such personage. My one sufficient
object was to greet that pious friend of mine, the Apostle Eliot, and rejoice
with him over the many precious souls he hath won from heathendom!”</p>
<p>“Ha, ha, ha!” cackled the old witch-lady, still nodding her high
head-dress at the minister. “Well, well! we must needs talk thus in the
daytime! You carry it off like an old hand! But at midnight, and in the forest,
we shall have other talk together!”</p>
<p>She passed on with her aged stateliness, but often turning back her head and
smiling at him, like one willing to recognise a secret intimacy of connexion.</p>
<p>“Have I then sold myself,” thought the minister, “to the
fiend whom, if men say true, this yellow-starched and velveted old hag has
chosen for her prince and master?”</p>
<p>The wretched minister! He had made a bargain very like it! Tempted by a dream
of happiness, he had yielded himself with deliberate choice, as he had never
done before, to what he knew was deadly sin. And the infectious poison of that
sin had been thus rapidly diffused throughout his moral system. It had
stupefied all blessed impulses, and awakened into vivid life the whole
brotherhood of bad ones. Scorn, bitterness, unprovoked malignity, gratuitous
desire of ill, ridicule of whatever was good and holy, all awoke to tempt, even
while they frightened him. And his encounter with old Mistress Hibbins, if it
were a real incident, did but show its sympathy and fellowship with wicked
mortals, and the world of perverted spirits.</p>
<p>He had by this time reached his dwelling on the edge of the burial-ground, and,
hastening up the stairs, took refuge in his study. The minister was glad to
have reached this shelter, without first betraying himself to the world by any
of those strange and wicked eccentricities to which he had been continually
impelled while passing through the streets. He entered the accustomed room, and
looked around him on its books, its windows, its fireplace, and the tapestried
comfort of the walls, with the same perception of strangeness that had haunted
him throughout his walk from the forest dell into the town and thitherward.
Here he had studied and written; here gone through fast and vigil, and come
forth half alive; here striven to pray; here borne a hundred thousand agonies!
There was the Bible, in its rich old Hebrew, with Moses and the Prophets
speaking to him, and God’s voice through all.</p>
<p>There on the table, with the inky pen beside it, was an unfinished sermon, with
a sentence broken in the midst, where his thoughts had ceased to gush out upon
the page two days before. He knew that it was himself, the thin and
white-cheeked minister, who had done and suffered these things, and written
thus far into the Election Sermon! But he seemed to stand apart, and eye this
former self with scornful pitying, but half-envious curiosity. That self was
gone. Another man had returned out of the forest—a wiser one—with a
knowledge of hidden mysteries which the simplicity of the former never could
have reached. A bitter kind of knowledge that!</p>
<p>While occupied with these reflections, a knock came at the door of the study,
and the minister said, “Come in!”—not wholly devoid of an
idea that he might behold an evil spirit. And so he did! It was old Roger
Chillingworth that entered. The minister stood white and speechless, with one
hand on the Hebrew Scriptures, and the other spread upon his breast.</p>
<p>“Welcome home, reverend sir,” said the physician. “And how
found you that godly man, the Apostle Eliot? But methinks, dear sir, you look
pale, as if the travel through the wilderness had been too sore for you. Will
not my aid be requisite to put you in heart and strength to preach your
Election Sermon?”</p>
<p>“Nay, I think not so,” rejoined the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale.
“My journey, and the sight of the holy Apostle yonder, and the free air
which I have breathed have done me good, after so long confinement in my study.
I think to need no more of your drugs, my kind physician, good though they be,
and administered by a friendly hand.”</p>
<p>All this time Roger Chillingworth was looking at the minister with the grave
and intent regard of a physician towards his patient. But, in spite of this
outward show, the latter was almost convinced of the old man’s knowledge,
or, at least, his confident suspicion, with respect to his own interview with
Hester Prynne. The physician knew then that in the minister’s regard he
was no longer a trusted friend, but his bitterest enemy. So much being known,
it would appear natural that a part of it should be expressed. It is singular,
however, how long a time often passes before words embody things; and with what
security two persons, who choose to avoid a certain subject, may approach its
very verge, and retire without disturbing it. Thus the minister felt no
apprehension that Roger Chillingworth would touch, in express words, upon the
real position which they sustained towards one another. Yet did the physician,
in his dark way, creep frightfully near the secret.</p>
<p>“Were it not better,” said he, “that you use my poor skill
tonight? Verily, dear sir, we must take pains to make you strong and vigorous
for this occasion of the Election discourse. The people look for great things
from you, apprehending that another year may come about and find their pastor
gone.”</p>
<p>“Yes, to another world,” replied the minister with pious
resignation. “Heaven grant it be a better one; for, in good sooth, I
hardly think to tarry with my flock through the flitting seasons of another
year! But touching your medicine, kind sir, in my present frame of body I need
it not.”</p>
<p>“I joy to hear it,” answered the physician. “It may be that
my remedies, so long administered in vain, begin now to take due effect. Happy
man were I, and well deserving of New England’s gratitude, could I
achieve this cure!”</p>
<p>“I thank you from my heart, most watchful friend,” said the
Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale with a solemn smile. “I thank you, and can but
requite your good deeds with my prayers.”</p>
<p>“A good man’s prayers are golden recompense!” rejoined old
Roger Chillingworth, as he took his leave. “Yea, they are the current
gold coin of the New Jerusalem, with the King’s own mint mark on
them!”</p>
<p>Left alone, the minister summoned a servant of the house, and requested food,
which, being set before him, he ate with ravenous appetite. Then flinging the
already written pages of the Election Sermon into the fire, he forthwith began
another, which he wrote with such an impulsive flow of thought and emotion,
that he fancied himself inspired; and only wondered that Heaven should see fit
to transmit the grand and solemn music of its oracles through so foul an organ
pipe as he. However, leaving that mystery to solve itself, or go unsolved for
ever, he drove his task onward with earnest haste and ecstasy.</p>
<p>Thus the night fled away, as if it were a winged steed, and he careering on it;
morning came, and peeped, blushing, through the curtains; and at last sunrise
threw a golden beam into the study, and laid it right across the
minister’s bedazzled eyes. There he was, with the pen still between his
fingers, and a vast, immeasurable tract of written space behind him!</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap21"></SPAN>XXI.<br/> THE NEW ENGLAND HOLIDAY</h2>
<p>Betimes in the morning of the day on which the new Governor was to receive his
office at the hands of the people, Hester Prynne and little Pearl came into the
market-place. It was already thronged with the craftsmen and other plebeian
inhabitants of the town, in considerable numbers, among whom, likewise, were
many rough figures, whose attire of deer-skins marked them as belonging to some
of the forest settlements, which surrounded the little metropolis of the
colony.</p>
<p>On this public holiday, as on all other occasions for seven years past, Hester
was clad in a garment of coarse gray cloth. Not more by its hue than by some
indescribable peculiarity in its fashion, it had the effect of making her fade
personally out of sight and outline; while again the scarlet letter brought her
back from this twilight indistinctness, and revealed her under the moral aspect
of its own illumination. Her face, so long familiar to the townspeople, showed
the marble quietude which they were accustomed to behold there. It was like a
mask; or, rather like the frozen calmness of a dead woman’s features;
owing this dreary resemblance to the fact that Hester was actually dead, in
respect to any claim of sympathy, and had departed out of the world with which
she still seemed to mingle.</p>
<p>It might be, on this one day, that there was an expression unseen before, nor,
indeed, vivid enough to be detected now; unless some preternaturally gifted
observer should have first read the heart, and have afterwards sought a
corresponding development in the countenance and mien. Such a spiritual seer
might have conceived, that, after sustaining the gaze of the multitude through
several miserable years as a necessity, a penance, and something which it was a
stern religion to endure, she now, for one last time more, encountered it
freely and voluntarily, in order to convert what had so long been agony into a
kind of triumph. “Look your last on the scarlet letter and its
wearer!”—the people’s victim and lifelong bond-slave, as they
fancied her, might say to them. “Yet a little while, and she will be
beyond your reach! A few hours longer and the deep, mysterious ocean will
quench and hide for ever the symbol which ye have caused to burn on her
bosom!” Nor were it an inconsistency too improbable to be assigned to
human nature, should we suppose a feeling of regret in Hester’s mind, at
the moment when she was about to win her freedom from the pain which had been
thus deeply incorporated with her being. Might there not be an irresistible
desire to quaff a last, long, breathless draught of the cup of wormwood and
aloes, with which nearly all her years of womanhood had been perpetually
flavoured. The wine of life, henceforth to be presented to her lips, must be
indeed rich, delicious, and exhilarating, in its chased and golden beaker, or
else leave an inevitable and weary languor, after the lees of bitterness
wherewith she had been drugged, as with a cordial of intensest potency.</p>
<p>Pearl was decked out with airy gaiety. It would have been impossible to guess
that this bright and sunny apparition owed its existence to the shape of gloomy
gray; or that a fancy, at once so gorgeous and so delicate as must have been
requisite to contrive the child’s apparel, was the same that had achieved
a task perhaps more difficult, in imparting so distinct a peculiarity to
Hester’s simple robe. The dress, so proper was it to little Pearl, seemed
an effluence, or inevitable development and outward manifestation of her
character, no more to be separated from her than the many-hued brilliancy from
a butterfly’s wing, or the painted glory from the leaf of a bright
flower. As with these, so with the child; her garb was all of one idea with her
nature. On this eventful day, moreover, there was a certain singular inquietude
and excitement in her mood, resembling nothing so much as the shimmer of a
diamond, that sparkles and flashes with the varied throbbings of the breast on
which it is displayed. Children have always a sympathy in the agitations of
those connected with them: always, especially, a sense of any trouble or
impending revolution, of whatever kind, in domestic circumstances; and
therefore Pearl, who was the gem on her mother’s unquiet bosom, betrayed,
by the very dance of her spirits, the emotions which none could detect in the
marble passiveness of Hester’s brow.</p>
<p>This effervescence made her flit with a bird-like movement, rather than walk by
her mother’s side.</p>
<p>She broke continually into shouts of a wild, inarticulate, and sometimes
piercing music. When they reached the market-place, she became still more
restless, on perceiving the stir and bustle that enlivened the spot; for it was
usually more like the broad and lonesome green before a village meeting-house,
than the centre of a town’s business.</p>
<p>“Why, what is this, mother?” cried she. “Wherefore have all
the people left their work today? Is it a play-day for the whole world? See,
there is the blacksmith! He has washed his sooty face, and put on his
Sabbath-day clothes, and looks as if he would gladly be merry, if any kind body
would only teach him how! And there is Master Brackett, the old jailer, nodding
and smiling at me. Why does he do so, mother?”</p>
<p>“He remembers thee a little babe, my child,” answered Hester.</p>
<p>“He should not nod and smile at me, for all that—the black, grim,
ugly-eyed old man!” said Pearl. “He may nod at thee, if he will;
for thou art clad in gray, and wearest the scarlet letter. But see, mother, how
many faces of strange people, and Indians among them, and sailors! What have
they all come to do, here in the market-place?”</p>
<p>“They wait to see the procession pass,” said Hester. “For the
Governor and the magistrates are to go by, and the ministers, and all the great
people and good people, with the music and the soldiers marching before
them.”</p>
<p>“And will the minister be there?” asked Pearl. “And will he
hold out both his hands to me, as when thou ledst me to him from the
brook-side?”</p>
<p>“He will be there, child,” answered her mother, “but he will
not greet thee today, nor must thou greet him.”</p>
<p>“What a strange, sad man is he!” said the child, as if speaking
partly to herself. “In the dark nighttime he calls us to him, and holds
thy hand and mine, as when we stood with him on the scaffold yonder! And in the
deep forest, where only the old trees can hear, and the strip of sky see it, he
talks with thee, sitting on a heap of moss! And he kisses my forehead, too, so
that the little brook would hardly wash it off! But, here, in the sunny day,
and among all the people, he knows us not; nor must we know him! A strange, sad
man is he, with his hand always over his heart!”</p>
<p>“Be quiet, Pearl—thou understandest not these things,” said
her mother. “Think not now of the minister, but look about thee, and see
how cheery is everybody’s face today. The children have come from their
schools, and the grown people from their workshops and their fields, on purpose
to be happy, for, today, a new man is beginning to rule over them; and
so—as has been the custom of mankind ever since a nation was first
gathered—they make merry and rejoice: as if a good and golden year were
at length to pass over the poor old world!”</p>
<p>It was as Hester said, in regard to the unwonted jollity that brightened the
faces of the people. Into this festal season of the year—as it already
was, and continued to be during the greater part of two centuries—the
Puritans compressed whatever mirth and public joy they deemed allowable to
human infirmity; thereby so far dispelling the customary cloud, that, for the
space of a single holiday, they appeared scarcely more grave than most other
communities at a period of general affliction.</p>
<p>But we perhaps exaggerate the gray or sable tinge, which undoubtedly
characterized the mood and manners of the age. The persons now in the
market-place of Boston had not been born to an inheritance of Puritanic gloom.
They were native Englishmen, whose fathers had lived in the sunny richness of
the Elizabethan epoch; a time when the life of England, viewed as one great
mass, would appear to have been as stately, magnificent, and joyous, as the
world has ever witnessed. Had they followed their hereditary taste, the New
England settlers would have illustrated all events of public importance by
bonfires, banquets, pageantries, and processions. Nor would it have been
impracticable, in the observance of majestic ceremonies, to combine mirthful
recreation with solemnity, and give, as it were, a grotesque and brilliant
embroidery to the great robe of state, which a nation, at such festivals, puts
on. There was some shadow of an attempt of this kind in the mode of celebrating
the day on which the political year of the colony commenced. The dim reflection
of a remembered splendour, a colourless and manifold diluted repetition of what
they had beheld in proud old London—we will not say at a royal
coronation, but at a Lord Mayor’s show—might be traced in the
customs which our forefathers instituted, with reference to the annual
installation of magistrates. The fathers and founders of the
commonwealth—the statesman, the priest, and the soldier—seemed it a
duty then to assume the outward state and majesty, which, in accordance with
antique style, was looked upon as the proper garb of public and social
eminence. All came forth to move in procession before the people’s eye,
and thus impart a needed dignity to the simple framework of a government so
newly constructed.</p>
<p>Then, too, the people were countenanced, if not encouraged, in relaxing the
severe and close application to their various modes of rugged industry, which
at all other times, seemed of the same piece and material with their religion.
Here, it is true, were none of the appliances which popular merriment would so
readily have found in the England of Elizabeth’s time, or that of
James—no rude shows of a theatrical kind; no minstrel, with his harp and
legendary ballad, nor gleeman with an ape dancing to his music; no juggler,
with his tricks of mimic witchcraft; no Merry Andrew, to stir up the multitude
with jests, perhaps a hundred years old, but still effective, by their appeals
to the very broadest sources of mirthful sympathy. All such professors of the
several branches of jocularity would have been sternly repressed, not only by
the rigid discipline of law, but by the general sentiment which give law its
vitality. Not the less, however, the great, honest face of the people
smiled—grimly, perhaps, but widely too. Nor were sports wanting, such as
the colonists had witnessed, and shared in, long ago, at the country fairs and
on the village-greens of England; and which it was thought well to keep alive
on this new soil, for the sake of the courage and manliness that were essential
in them. Wrestling matches, in the different fashions of Cornwall and
Devonshire, were seen here and there about the market-place; in one corner,
there was a friendly bout at quarterstaff; and—what attracted most
interest of all—on the platform of the pillory, already so noted in our
pages, two masters of defence were commencing an exhibition with the buckler
and broadsword. But, much to the disappointment of the crowd, this latter
business was broken off by the interposition of the town beadle, who had no
idea of permitting the majesty of the law to be violated by such an abuse of
one of its consecrated places.</p>
<p>It may not be too much to affirm, on the whole, (the people being then in the
first stages of joyless deportment, and the offspring of sires who had known
how to be merry, in their day), that they would compare favourably, in point of
holiday keeping, with their descendants, even at so long an interval as
ourselves. Their immediate posterity, the generation next to the early
emigrants, wore the blackest shade of Puritanism, and so darkened the national
visage with it, that all the subsequent years have not sufficed to clear it up.
We have yet to learn again the forgotten art of gaiety.</p>
<p>The picture of human life in the market-place, though its general tint was the
sad gray, brown, or black of the English emigrants, was yet enlivened by some
diversity of hue. A party of Indians—in their savage finery of curiously
embroidered deerskin robes, wampum-belts, red and yellow ochre, and feathers,
and armed with the bow and arrow and stone-headed spear—stood apart with
countenances of inflexible gravity, beyond what even the Puritan aspect could
attain. Nor, wild as were these painted barbarians, were they the wildest
feature of the scene. This distinction could more justly be claimed by some
mariners—a part of the crew of the vessel from the Spanish Main—who
had come ashore to see the humours of Election Day. They were rough-looking
desperadoes, with sun-blackened faces, and an immensity of beard; their wide
short trousers were confined about the waist by belts, often clasped with a
rough plate of gold, and sustaining always a long knife, and in some instances,
a sword. From beneath their broad-brimmed hats of palm-leaf, gleamed eyes
which, even in good-nature and merriment, had a kind of animal ferocity. They
transgressed without fear or scruple, the rules of behaviour that were binding
on all others: smoking tobacco under the beadle’s very nose, although
each whiff would have cost a townsman a shilling; and quaffing at their
pleasure, draughts of wine or aqua-vitæ from pocket flasks, which they freely
tendered to the gaping crowd around them. It remarkably characterised the
incomplete morality of the age, rigid as we call it, that a licence was allowed
the seafaring class, not merely for their freaks on shore, but for far more
desperate deeds on their proper element. The sailor of that day would go near
to be arraigned as a pirate in our own. There could be little doubt, for
instance, that this very ship’s crew, though no unfavourable specimens of
the nautical brotherhood, had been guilty, as we should phrase it, of
depredations on the Spanish commerce, such as would have perilled all their
necks in a modern court of justice.</p>
<p>But the sea in those old times heaved, swelled, and foamed very much at its own
will, or subject only to the tempestuous wind, with hardly any attempts at
regulation by human law. The buccaneer on the wave might relinquish his calling
and become at once if he chose, a man of probity and piety on land; nor, even
in the full career of his reckless life, was he regarded as a personage with
whom it was disreputable to traffic or casually associate. Thus the Puritan
elders in their black cloaks, starched bands, and steeple-crowned hats, smiled
not unbenignantly at the clamour and rude deportment of these jolly seafaring
men; and it excited neither surprise nor animadversion when so reputable a
citizen as old Roger Chillingworth, the physician, was seen to enter the
market-place in close and familiar talk with the commander of the questionable
vessel.</p>
<p>The latter was by far the most showy and gallant figure, so far as apparel
went, anywhere to be seen among the multitude. He wore a profusion of ribbons
on his garment, and gold lace on his hat, which was also encircled by a gold
chain, and surmounted with a feather. There was a sword at his side and a
sword-cut on his forehead, which, by the arrangement of his hair, he seemed
anxious rather to display than hide. A landsman could hardly have worn this
garb and shown this face, and worn and shown them both with such a galliard
air, without undergoing stern question before a magistrate, and probably
incurring a fine or imprisonment, or perhaps an exhibition in the stocks. As
regarded the shipmaster, however, all was looked upon as pertaining to the
character, as to a fish his glistening scales.</p>
<p>After parting from the physician, the commander of the Bristol ship strolled
idly through the market-place; until happening to approach the spot where
Hester Prynne was standing, he appeared to recognise, and did not hesitate to
address her. As was usually the case wherever Hester stood, a small vacant
area—a sort of magic circle—had formed itself about her, into
which, though the people were elbowing one another at a little distance, none
ventured or felt disposed to intrude. It was a forcible type of the moral
solitude in which the scarlet letter enveloped its fated wearer; partly by her
own reserve, and partly by the instinctive, though no longer so unkindly,
withdrawal of her fellow-creatures. Now, if never before, it answered a good
purpose by enabling Hester and the seaman to speak together without risk of
being overheard; and so changed was Hester Prynne’s repute before the
public, that the matron in town, most eminent for rigid morality, could not
have held such intercourse with less result of scandal than herself.</p>
<p>“So, mistress,” said the mariner, “I must bid the steward
make ready one more berth than you bargained for! No fear of scurvy or ship
fever this voyage. What with the ship’s surgeon and this other doctor,
our only danger will be from drug or pill; more by token, as there is a lot of
apothecary’s stuff aboard, which I traded for with a Spanish
vessel.”</p>
<p>“What mean you?” inquired Hester, startled more than she permitted
to appear. “Have you another passenger?”</p>
<p>“Why, know you not,” cried the shipmaster, “that this
physician here—Chillingworth he calls himself—is minded to try my
cabin-fare with you? Ay, ay, you must have known it; for he tells me he is of
your party, and a close friend to the gentleman you spoke of—he that is
in peril from these sour old Puritan rulers.”</p>
<p>“They know each other well, indeed,” replied Hester, with a mien of
calmness, though in the utmost consternation. “They have long dwelt
together.”</p>
<p>Nothing further passed between the mariner and Hester Prynne. But at that
instant she beheld old Roger Chillingworth himself, standing in the remotest
corner of the market-place and smiling on her; a smile which—across the
wide and bustling square, and through all the talk and laughter, and various
thoughts, moods, and interests of the crowd—conveyed secret and fearful
meaning.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap22"></SPAN>XXII.<br/> THE PROCESSION</h2>
<p>Before Hester Prynne could call together her thoughts, and consider what was
practicable to be done in this new and startling aspect of affairs, the sound
of military music was heard approaching along a contiguous street. It denoted
the advance of the procession of magistrates and citizens on its way towards
the meeting-house: where, in compliance with a custom thus early established,
and ever since observed, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale was to deliver an Election
Sermon.</p>
<p>Soon the head of the procession showed itself, with a slow and stately march,
turning a corner, and making its way across the market-place. First came the
music. It comprised a variety of instruments, perhaps imperfectly adapted to
one another, and played with no great skill; but yet attaining the great object
for which the harmony of drum and clarion addresses itself to the
multitude—that of imparting a higher and more heroic air to the scene of
life that passes before the eye. Little Pearl at first clapped her hands, but
then lost for an instant the restless agitation that had kept her in a
continual effervescence throughout the morning; she gazed silently, and seemed
to be borne upward like a floating sea-bird on the long heaves and swells of
sound. But she was brought back to her former mood by the shimmer of the
sunshine on the weapons and bright armour of the military company, which
followed after the music, and formed the honorary escort of the procession.
This body of soldiery—which still sustains a corporate existence, and
marches down from past ages with an ancient and honourable fame—was
composed of no mercenary materials. Its ranks were filled with gentlemen who
felt the stirrings of martial impulse, and sought to establish a kind of
College of Arms, where, as in an association of Knights Templars, they might
learn the science, and, so far as peaceful exercise would teach them, the
practices of war. The high estimation then placed upon the military character
might be seen in the lofty port of each individual member of the company. Some
of them, indeed, by their services in the Low Countries and on other fields of
European warfare, had fairly won their title to assume the name and pomp of
soldiership. The entire array, moreover, clad in burnished steel, and with
plumage nodding over their bright morions, had a brilliancy of effect which no
modern display can aspire to equal.</p>
<p>And yet the men of civil eminence, who came immediately behind the military
escort, were better worth a thoughtful observer’s eye. Even in outward
demeanour they showed a stamp of majesty that made the warrior’s haughty
stride look vulgar, if not absurd. It was an age when what we call talent had
far less consideration than now, but the massive materials which produce
stability and dignity of character a great deal more. The people possessed by
hereditary right the quality of reverence, which, in their descendants, if it
survive at all, exists in smaller proportion, and with a vastly diminished
force in the selection and estimate of public men. The change may be for good
or ill, and is partly, perhaps, for both. In that old day the English settler
on these rude shores—having left king, nobles, and all degrees of awful
rank behind, while still the faculty and necessity of reverence was strong in
him—bestowed it on the white hair and venerable brow of age—on
long-tried integrity—on solid wisdom and sad-coloured experience—on
endowments of that grave and weighty order which gave the idea of permanence,
and comes under the general definition of respectability. These primitive
statesmen, therefore—Bradstreet, Endicott, Dudley, Bellingham, and their
compeers—who were elevated to power by the early choice of the people,
seem to have been not often brilliant, but distinguished by a ponderous
sobriety, rather than activity of intellect. They had fortitude and
self-reliance, and in time of difficulty or peril stood up for the welfare of
the state like a line of cliffs against a tempestuous tide. The traits of
character here indicated were well represented in the square cast of
countenance and large physical development of the new colonial magistrates. So
far as a demeanour of natural authority was concerned, the mother country need
not have been ashamed to see these foremost men of an actual democracy adopted
into the House of Peers, or make the Privy Council of the Sovereign.</p>
<p>Next in order to the magistrates came the young and eminently distinguished
divine, from whose lips the religious discourse of the anniversary was
expected. His was the profession at that era in which intellectual ability
displayed itself far more than in political life; for—leaving a higher
motive out of the question—it offered inducements powerful enough in the
almost worshipping respect of the community, to win the most aspiring ambition
into its service. Even political power—as in the case of Increase
Mather—was within the grasp of a successful priest.</p>
<p>It was the observation of those who beheld him now, that never, since Mr.
Dimmesdale first set his foot on the New England shore, had he exhibited such
energy as was seen in the gait and air with which he kept his pace in the
procession. There was no feebleness of step as at other times; his frame was
not bent, nor did his hand rest ominously upon his heart. Yet, if the clergyman
were rightly viewed, his strength seemed not of the body. It might be spiritual
and imparted to him by angelical ministrations. It might be the exhilaration of
that potent cordial which is distilled only in the furnace-glow of earnest and
long-continued thought. Or perchance his sensitive temperament was invigorated
by the loud and piercing music that swelled heavenward, and uplifted him on
its ascending wave. Nevertheless, so abstracted was his look, it might be
questioned whether Mr. Dimmesdale even heard the music. There was his body,
moving onward, and with an unaccustomed force. But where was his mind? Far and
deep in its own region, busying itself, with preternatural activity, to marshal
a procession of stately thoughts that were soon to issue thence; and so he saw
nothing, heard nothing, knew nothing of what was around him; but the spiritual
element took up the feeble frame and carried it along, unconscious of the
burden, and converting it to spirit like itself. Men of uncommon intellect, who
have grown morbid, possess this occasional power of mighty effort, into which
they throw the life of many days and then are lifeless for as many more.</p>
<p>Hester Prynne, gazing steadfastly at the clergyman, felt a dreary influence
come over her, but wherefore or whence she knew not, unless that he seemed so
remote from her own sphere, and utterly beyond her reach. One glance of
recognition she had imagined must needs pass between them. She thought of the
dim forest, with its little dell of solitude, and love, and anguish, and the
mossy tree-trunk, where, sitting hand-in-hand, they had mingled their sad and
passionate talk with the melancholy murmur of the brook. How deeply had they
known each other then! And was this the man? She hardly knew him now! He,
moving proudly past, enveloped as it were, in the rich music, with the
procession of majestic and venerable fathers; he, so unattainable in his
worldly position, and still more so in that far vista of his unsympathizing
thoughts, through which she now beheld him! Her spirit sank with the idea that
all must have been a delusion, and that, vividly as she had dreamed it, there
could be no real bond betwixt the clergyman and herself. And thus much of woman
was there in Hester, that she could scarcely forgive him—least of all
now, when the heavy footstep of their approaching Fate might be heard, nearer,
nearer, nearer!—for being able so completely to withdraw himself from
their mutual world—while she groped darkly, and stretched forth her cold
hands, and found him not.</p>
<p>Pearl either saw and responded to her mother’s feelings, or herself felt
the remoteness and intangibility that had fallen around the minister. While the
procession passed, the child was uneasy, fluttering up and down, like a bird on
the point of taking flight. When the whole had gone by, she looked up into
Hester’s face—</p>
<p>“Mother,” said she, “was that the same minister that kissed
me by the brook?”</p>
<p>“Hold thy peace, dear little Pearl!” whispered her mother.
“We must not always talk in the market-place of what happens to us in the
forest.”</p>
<p>“I could not be sure that it was he—so strange he looked,”
continued the child. “Else I would have run to him, and bid him kiss me
now, before all the people, even as he did yonder among the dark old trees.
What would the minister have said, mother? Would he have clapped his hand over
his heart, and scowled on me, and bid me begone?”</p>
<p>“What should he say, Pearl,” answered Hester, “save that it
was no time to kiss, and that kisses are not to be given in the market-place?
Well for thee, foolish child, that thou didst not speak to him!”</p>
<p>Another shade of the same sentiment, in reference to Mr. Dimmesdale, was
expressed by a person whose eccentricities—insanity, as we should term
it—led her to do what few of the townspeople would have ventured
on—to begin a conversation with the wearer of the scarlet letter in
public. It was Mistress Hibbins, who, arrayed in great magnificence, with a
triple ruff, a broidered stomacher, a gown of rich velvet, and a gold-headed
cane, had come forth to see the procession. As this ancient lady had the renown
(which subsequently cost her no less a price than her life) of being a
principal actor in all the works of necromancy that were continually going
forward, the crowd gave way before her, and seemed to fear the touch of her
garment, as if it carried the plague among its gorgeous folds. Seen in
conjunction with Hester Prynne—kindly as so many now felt towards the
latter—the dread inspired by Mistress Hibbins had doubled, and caused a
general movement from that part of the market-place in which the two women
stood.</p>
<p>“Now, what mortal imagination could conceive it?” whispered the old
lady confidentially to Hester. “Yonder divine man! That saint on earth,
as the people uphold him to be, and as—I must needs say—he really
looks! Who, now, that saw him pass in the procession, would think how little
while it is since he went forth out of his study—chewing a Hebrew text of
Scripture in his mouth, I warrant—to take an airing in the forest! Aha!
we know what that means, Hester Prynne! But truly, forsooth, I find it hard to
believe him the same man. Many a church member saw I, walking behind the music,
that has danced in the same measure with me, when Somebody was fiddler, and, it
might be, an Indian powwow or a Lapland wizard changing hands with us! That is
but a trifle, when a woman knows the world. But this minister. Couldst thou
surely tell, Hester, whether he was the same man that encountered thee on the
forest path?”</p>
<p>“Madam, I know not of what you speak,” answered Hester Prynne,
feeling Mistress Hibbins to be of infirm mind; yet strangely startled and
awe-stricken by the confidence with which she affirmed a personal connexion
between so many persons (herself among them) and the Evil One. “It is not
for me to talk lightly of a learned and pious minister of the Word, like the
Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale.”</p>
<p>“Fie, woman—fie!” cried the old lady, shaking her finger at
Hester. “Dost thou think I have been to the forest so many times, and
have yet no skill to judge who else has been there? Yea, though no leaf of the
wild garlands which they wore while they danced be left in their hair! I know
thee, Hester, for I behold the token. We may all see it in the sunshine! and it
glows like a red flame in the dark. Thou wearest it openly, so there need be no
question about that. But this minister! Let me tell thee in thine ear! When the
Black Man sees one of his own servants, signed and sealed, so shy of owning to
the bond as is the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, he hath a way of ordering matters
so that the mark shall be disclosed, in open daylight, to the eyes of all the
world! What is that the minister seeks to hide, with his hand always over his
heart? Ha, Hester Prynne?”</p>
<p>“What is it, good Mistress Hibbins?” eagerly asked little Pearl.
“Hast thou seen it?”</p>
<p>“No matter, darling!” responded Mistress Hibbins, making Pearl a
profound reverence. “Thou thyself wilt see it, one time or another. They
say, child, thou art of the lineage of the Prince of Air! Wilt thou ride with
me some fine night to see thy father? Then thou shalt know wherefore the
minister keeps his hand over his heart!”</p>
<p>Laughing so shrilly that all the market-place could hear her, the weird old
gentlewoman took her departure.</p>
<p>By this time the preliminary prayer had been offered in the meeting-house, and
the accents of the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale were heard commencing his discourse.
An irresistible feeling kept Hester near the spot. As the sacred edifice was
too much thronged to admit another auditor, she took up her position close
beside the scaffold of the pillory. It was in sufficient proximity to bring the
whole sermon to her ears, in the shape of an indistinct but varied murmur and
flow of the minister’s very peculiar voice.</p>
<p>This vocal organ was in itself a rich endowment, insomuch that a listener,
comprehending nothing of the language in which the preacher spoke, might still
have been swayed to and fro by the mere tone and cadence. Like all other music,
it breathed passion and pathos, and emotions high or tender, in a tongue native
to the human heart, wherever educated. Muffled as the sound was by its passage
through the church walls, Hester Prynne listened with such intenseness, and
sympathized so intimately, that the sermon had throughout a meaning for her,
entirely apart from its indistinguishable words. These, perhaps, if more
distinctly heard, might have been only a grosser medium, and have clogged the
spiritual sense. Now she caught the low undertone, as of the wind sinking down
to repose itself; then ascended with it, as it rose through progressive
gradations of sweetness and power, until its volume seemed to envelop her with
an atmosphere of awe and solemn grandeur. And yet, majestic as the voice
sometimes became, there was for ever in it an essential character of
plaintiveness. A loud or low expression of anguish—the whisper, or the
shriek, as it might be conceived, of suffering humanity, that touched a
sensibility in every bosom! At times this deep strain of pathos was all that
could be heard, and scarcely heard sighing amid a desolate silence. But even
when the minister’s voice grew high and commanding—when it gushed
irrepressibly upward—when it assumed its utmost breadth and power, so
overfilling the church as to burst its way through the solid walls, and diffuse
itself in the open air—still, if the auditor listened intently, and for
the purpose, he could detect the same cry of pain. What was it? The complaint
of a human heart, sorrow-laden, perchance guilty, telling its secret, whether
of guilt or sorrow, to the great heart of mankind; beseeching its sympathy or
forgiveness,—at every moment,—in each accent,—and never in
vain! It was this profound and continual undertone that gave the clergyman his
most appropriate power.</p>
<p>During all this time, Hester stood, statue-like, at the foot of the scaffold.
If the minister’s voice had not kept her there, there would,
nevertheless, have been an inevitable magnetism in that spot, whence she dated
the first hour of her life of ignominy. There was a sense within her—too
ill-defined to be made a thought, but weighing heavily on her mind—that
her whole orb of life, both before and after, was connected with this spot, as
with the one point that gave it unity.</p>
<p>Little Pearl, meanwhile, had quitted her mother’s side, and was playing
at her own will about the market-place. She made the sombre crowd cheerful by
her erratic and glistening ray, even as a bird of bright plumage illuminates a
whole tree of dusky foliage by darting to and fro, half seen and half concealed
amid the twilight of the clustering leaves. She had an undulating, but
oftentimes a sharp and irregular movement. It indicated the restless vivacity
of her spirit, which today was doubly indefatigable in its tip-toe dance,
because it was played upon and vibrated with her mother’s disquietude.
Whenever Pearl saw anything to excite her ever active and wandering curiosity,
she flew thitherward, and, as we might say, seized upon that man or thing as
her own property, so far as she desired it, but without yielding the minutest
degree of control over her motions in requital. The Puritans looked on, and, if
they smiled, were none the less inclined to pronounce the child a demon
offspring, from the indescribable charm of beauty and eccentricity that shone
through her little figure, and sparkled with its activity. She ran and looked
the wild Indian in the face, and he grew conscious of a nature wilder than his
own. Thence, with native audacity, but still with a reserve as characteristic,
she flew into the midst of a group of mariners, the swarthy-cheeked wild men of
the ocean, as the Indians were of the land; and they gazed wonderingly and
admiringly at Pearl, as if a flake of the sea-foam had taken the shape of a
little maid, and were gifted with a soul of the sea-fire, that flashes beneath
the prow in the night-time.</p>
<p>One of these seafaring men the shipmaster, indeed, who had spoken to Hester
Prynne was so smitten with Pearl’s aspect, that he attempted to lay hands
upon her, with purpose to snatch a kiss. Finding it as impossible to touch her
as to catch a humming-bird in the air, he took from his hat the gold chain that
was twisted about it, and threw it to the child. Pearl immediately twined it
around her neck and waist with such happy skill, that, once seen there, it
became a part of her, and it was difficult to imagine her without it.</p>
<p>“Thy mother is yonder woman with the scarlet letter,” said the
seaman, “Wilt thou carry her a message from me?”</p>
<p>“If the message pleases me, I will,” answered Pearl.</p>
<p>“Then tell her,” rejoined he, “that I spake again with the
black-a-visaged, hump shouldered old doctor, and he engages to bring his
friend, the gentleman she wots of, aboard with him. So let thy mother take no
thought, save for herself and thee. Wilt thou tell her this, thou
witch-baby?”</p>
<p>“Mistress Hibbins says my father is the Prince of the Air!” cried
Pearl, with a naughty smile. “If thou callest me that ill-name, I shall
tell him of thee, and he will chase thy ship with a tempest!”</p>
<p>Pursuing a zigzag course across the market-place, the child returned to her
mother, and communicated what the mariner had said. Hester’s strong, calm
steadfastly-enduring spirit almost sank, at last, on beholding this dark and
grim countenance of an inevitable doom, which at the moment when a passage
seemed to open for the minister and herself out of their labyrinth of
misery—showed itself with an unrelenting smile, right in the midst of
their path.</p>
<p>With her mind harassed by the terrible perplexity in which the
shipmaster’s intelligence involved her, she was also subjected to another
trial. There were many people present from the country round about, who had
often heard of the scarlet letter, and to whom it had been made terrific by a
hundred false or exaggerated rumours, but who had never beheld it with their
own bodily eyes. These, after exhausting other modes of amusement, now thronged
about Hester Prynne with rude and boorish intrusiveness. Unscrupulous as it
was, however, it could not bring them nearer than a circuit of several yards.
At that distance they accordingly stood, fixed there by the centrifugal force
of the repugnance which the mystic symbol inspired. The whole gang of sailors,
likewise, observing the press of spectators, and learning the purport of the
scarlet letter, came and thrust their sunburnt and desperado-looking faces into
the ring. Even the Indians were affected by a sort of cold shadow of the white
man’s curiosity and, gliding through the crowd, fastened their snake-like
black eyes on Hester’s bosom, conceiving, perhaps, that the wearer of
this brilliantly embroidered badge must needs be a personage of high dignity
among her people. Lastly, the inhabitants of the town (their own interest in
this worn-out subject languidly reviving itself, by sympathy with what they saw
others feel) lounged idly to the same quarter, and tormented Hester Prynne,
perhaps more than all the rest, with their cool, well-acquainted gaze at her
familiar shame. Hester saw and recognized the selfsame faces of that group of
matrons, who had awaited her forthcoming from the prison-door seven years ago;
all save one, the youngest and only compassionate among them, whose burial-robe
she had since made. At the final hour, when she was so soon to fling aside the
burning letter, it had strangely become the centre of more remark and
excitement, and was thus made to sear her breast more painfully, than at any
time since the first day she put it on.</p>
<p>While Hester stood in that magic circle of ignominy, where the cunning cruelty
of her sentence seemed to have fixed her for ever, the admirable preacher was
looking down from the sacred pulpit upon an audience whose very inmost spirits
had yielded to his control. The sainted minister in the church! The woman of
the scarlet letter in the market-place! What imagination would have been
irreverent enough to surmise that the same scorching stigma was on them both!</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap23"></SPAN>XXIII.<br/> THE REVELATION OF THE SCARLET LETTER</h2>
<p>The eloquent voice, on which the souls of the listening audience had been borne
aloft as on the swelling waves of the sea, at length came to a pause. There was
a momentary silence, profound as what should follow the utterance of oracles.
Then ensued a murmur and half-hushed tumult, as if the auditors, released from
the high spell that had transported them into the region of another’s
mind, were returning into themselves, with all their awe and wonder still heavy
on them. In a moment more the crowd began to gush forth from the doors of the
church. Now that there was an end, they needed more breath, more fit to support
the gross and earthly life into which they relapsed, than that atmosphere which
the preacher had converted into words of flame, and had burdened with the rich
fragrance of his thought.</p>
<p>In the open air their rapture broke into speech. The street and the
market-place absolutely babbled, from side to side, with applauses of the
minister. His hearers could not rest until they had told one another of what
each knew better than he could tell or hear.</p>
<p>According to their united testimony, never had man spoken in so wise, so high,
and so holy a spirit, as he that spake this day; nor had inspiration ever
breathed through mortal lips more evidently than it did through his. Its
influence could be seen, as it were, descending upon him, and possessing him,
and continually lifting him out of the written discourse that lay before him,
and filling him with ideas that must have been as marvellous to himself as to
his audience. His subject, it appeared, had been the relation between the Deity
and the communities of mankind, with a special reference to the New England
which they were here planting in the wilderness. And, as he drew towards the
close, a spirit as of prophecy had come upon him, constraining him to its
purpose as mightily as the old prophets of Israel were constrained, only with
this difference, that, whereas the Jewish seers had denounced judgments and
ruin on their country, it was his mission to foretell a high and glorious
destiny for the newly gathered people of the Lord. But, throughout it all, and
through the whole discourse, there had been a certain deep, sad undertone of
pathos, which could not be interpreted otherwise than as the natural regret of
one soon to pass away. Yes; their minister whom they so loved—and who so
loved them all, that he could not depart heavenward without a sigh—had
the foreboding of untimely death upon him, and would soon leave them in their
tears. This idea of his transitory stay on earth gave the last emphasis to the
effect which the preacher had produced; it was as if an angel, in his passage
to the skies, had shaken his bright wings over the people for an
instant—at once a shadow and a splendour—and had shed down a shower
of golden truths upon them.</p>
<p>Thus, there had come to the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale—as to most men, in
their various spheres, though seldom recognised until they see it far behind
them—an epoch of life more brilliant and full of triumph than any
previous one, or than any which could hereafter be. He stood, at this moment,
on the very proudest eminence of superiority, to which the gifts or intellect,
rich lore, prevailing eloquence, and a reputation of whitest sanctity, could
exalt a clergyman in New England’s earliest days, when the professional
character was of itself a lofty pedestal. Such was the position which the
minister occupied, as he bowed his head forward on the cushions of the pulpit
at the close of his Election Sermon. Meanwhile Hester Prynne was standing
beside the scaffold of the pillory, with the scarlet letter still burning on
her breast!</p>
<p>Now was heard again the clamour of the music, and the measured tramp of the
military escort issuing from the church door. The procession was to be
marshalled thence to the town hall, where a solemn banquet would complete the
ceremonies of the day.</p>
<p>Once more, therefore, the train of venerable and majestic fathers were seen
moving through a broad pathway of the people, who drew back reverently, on
either side, as the Governor and magistrates, the old and wise men, the holy
ministers, and all that were eminent and renowned, advanced into the midst of
them. When they were fairly in the market-place, their presence was greeted by
a shout. This—though doubtless it might acquire additional force and
volume from the child-like loyalty which the age awarded to its
rulers—was felt to be an irrepressible outburst of enthusiasm kindled in
the auditors by that high strain of eloquence which was yet reverberating in
their ears. Each felt the impulse in himself, and in the same breath, caught it
from his neighbour. Within the church, it had hardly been kept down; beneath
the sky it pealed upward to the zenith. There were human beings enough, and
enough of highly wrought and symphonious feeling to produce that more
impressive sound than the organ tones of the blast, or the thunder, or the roar
of the sea; even that mighty swell of many voices, blended into one great voice
by the universal impulse which makes likewise one vast heart out of the many.
Never, from the soil of New England had gone up such a shout! Never, on New
England soil had stood the man so honoured by his mortal brethren as the
preacher!</p>
<p>How fared it with him, then? Were there not the brilliant particles of a halo
in the air about his head? So etherealised by spirit as he was, and so
apotheosised by worshipping admirers, did his footsteps, in the procession,
really tread upon the dust of earth?</p>
<p>As the ranks of military men and civil fathers moved onward, all eyes were
turned towards the point where the minister was seen to approach among them.
The shout died into a murmur, as one portion of the crowd after another
obtained a glimpse of him. How feeble and pale he looked, amid all his triumph!
The energy—or say, rather, the inspiration which had held him up, until
he should have delivered the sacred message that had brought its own strength
along with it from heaven—was withdrawn, now that it had so faithfully
performed its office. The glow, which they had just before beheld burning on
his cheek, was extinguished, like a flame that sinks down hopelessly among the
late decaying embers. It seemed hardly the face of a man alive, with such a
death-like hue: it was hardly a man with life in him, that tottered on his path
so nervously, yet tottered, and did not fall!</p>
<p>One of his clerical brethren—it was the venerable John
Wilson—observing the state in which Mr. Dimmesdale was left by the
retiring wave of intellect and sensibility, stepped forward hastily to offer
his support. The minister tremulously, but decidedly, repelled the old
man’s arm. He still walked onward, if that movement could be so
described, which rather resembled the wavering effort of an infant, with its
mother’s arms in view, outstretched to tempt him forward. And now, almost
imperceptible as were the latter steps of his progress, he had come opposite
the well-remembered and weather-darkened scaffold, where, long since, with all
that dreary lapse of time between, Hester Prynne had encountered the
world’s ignominious stare. There stood Hester, holding little Pearl by
the hand! And there was the scarlet letter on her breast! The minister here
made a pause; although the music still played the stately and rejoicing march
to which the procession moved. It summoned him onward—inward to the
festival!—but here he made a pause.</p>
<p>Bellingham, for the last few moments, had kept an anxious eye upon him. He now
left his own place in the procession, and advanced to give assistance judging,
from Mr. Dimmesdale’s aspect that he must otherwise inevitably fall. But
there was something in the latter’s expression that warned back the
magistrate, although a man not readily obeying the vague intimations that pass
from one spirit to another. The crowd, meanwhile, looked on with awe and
wonder. This earthly faintness, was, in their view, only another phase of the
minister’s celestial strength; nor would it have seemed a miracle too
high to be wrought for one so holy, had he ascended before their eyes, waxing
dimmer and brighter, and fading at last into the light of heaven!</p>
<p>He turned towards the scaffold, and stretched forth his arms.</p>
<p>“Hester,” said he, “come hither! Come, my little
Pearl!”</p>
<p>It was a ghastly look with which he regarded them; but there was something at
once tender and strangely triumphant in it. The child, with the bird-like
motion, which was one of her characteristics, flew to him, and clasped her arms
about his knees. Hester Prynne—slowly, as if impelled by inevitable fate,
and against her strongest will—likewise drew near, but paused before she
reached him. At this instant old Roger Chillingworth thrust himself through the
crowd—or, perhaps, so dark, disturbed, and evil was his look, he rose up
out of some nether region—to snatch back his victim from what he sought
to do! Be that as it might, the old man rushed forward, and caught the minister
by the arm.</p>
<p>“Madman, hold! what is your purpose?” whispered he. “Wave
back that woman! Cast off this child! All shall be well! Do not blacken your
fame, and perish in dishonour! I can yet save you! Would you bring infamy on
your sacred profession?”</p>
<p>“Ha, tempter! Methinks thou art too late!” answered the minister,
encountering his eye, fearfully, but firmly. “Thy power is not what it
was! With God’s help, I shall escape thee now!”</p>
<p>He again extended his hand to the woman of the scarlet letter.</p>
<p>“Hester Prynne,” cried he, with a piercing earnestness, “in
the name of Him, so terrible and so merciful, who gives me grace, at this last
moment, to do what—for my own heavy sin and miserable agony—I
withheld myself from doing seven years ago, come hither now, and twine thy
strength about me! Thy strength, Hester; but let it be guided by the will which
God hath granted me! This wretched and wronged old man is opposing it with all
his might!—with all his own might, and the fiend’s! Come,
Hester—come! Support me up yonder scaffold.”</p>
<p>The crowd was in a tumult. The men of rank and dignity, who stood more
immediately around the clergyman, were so taken by surprise, and so perplexed
as to the purport of what they saw—unable to receive the explanation
which most readily presented itself, or to imagine any other—that they
remained silent and inactive spectators of the judgement which Providence
seemed about to work. They beheld the minister, leaning on Hester’s
shoulder, and supported by her arm around him, approach the scaffold, and
ascend its steps; while still the little hand of the sin-born child was clasped
in his. Old Roger Chillingworth followed, as one intimately connected with the
drama of guilt and sorrow in which they had all been actors, and well entitled,
therefore to be present at its closing scene.</p>
<p>“Hadst thou sought the whole earth over,” said he looking darkly at
the clergyman, “there was no one place so secret—no high place nor
lowly place, where thou couldst have escaped me—save on this very
scaffold!”</p>
<p>“Thanks be to Him who hath led me hither!” answered the minister.</p>
<p>Yet he trembled, and turned to Hester, with an expression of doubt and anxiety
in his eyes, not the less evidently betrayed, that there was a feeble smile
upon his lips.</p>
<p>“Is not this better,” murmured he, “than what we dreamed of
in the forest?”</p>
<p>“I know not! I know not!” she hurriedly replied. “Better?
Yea; so we may both die, and little Pearl die with us!”</p>
<p>“For thee and Pearl, be it as God shall order,” said the minister;
“and God is merciful! Let me now do the will which He hath made plain
before my sight. For, Hester, I am a dying man. So let me make haste to take my
shame upon me!”</p>
<p>Partly supported by Hester Prynne, and holding one hand of little
Pearl’s, the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale turned to the dignified and
venerable rulers; to the holy ministers, who were his brethren; to the people,
whose great heart was thoroughly appalled yet overflowing with tearful
sympathy, as knowing that some deep life-matter—which, if full of sin,
was full of anguish and repentance likewise—was now to be laid open to
them. The sun, but little past its meridian, shone down upon the clergyman, and
gave a distinctness to his figure, as he stood out from all the earth, to put
in his plea of guilty at the bar of Eternal Justice.</p>
<p>“People of New England!” cried he, with a voice that rose over
them, high, solemn, and majestic—yet had always a tremor through it, and
sometimes a shriek, struggling up out of a fathomless depth of remorse and
woe—“ye, that have loved me!—ye, that have deemed me
holy!—behold me here, the one sinner of the world! At last—at
last!—I stand upon the spot where, seven years since, I should have
stood, here, with this woman, whose arm, more than the little strength
wherewith I have crept hitherward, sustains me at this dreadful moment, from
grovelling down upon my face! Lo, the scarlet letter which Hester wears! Ye
have all shuddered at it! Wherever her walk hath been—wherever, so
miserably burdened, she may have hoped to find repose—it hath cast a
lurid gleam of awe and horrible repugnance round about her. But there stood one
in the midst of you, at whose brand of sin and infamy ye have not
shuddered!”</p>
<p>It seemed, at this point, as if the minister must leave the remainder of his
secret undisclosed. But he fought back the bodily weakness—and, still
more, the faintness of heart—that was striving for the mastery with him.
He threw off all assistance, and stepped passionately forward a pace before the
woman and the children.</p>
<p>“It was on him!” he continued, with a kind of fierceness; so
determined was he to speak out the whole. “God’s eye beheld it! The
angels were for ever pointing at it! (The Devil knew it well, and fretted it
continually with the touch of his burning finger!) But he hid it cunningly from
men, and walked among you with the mien of a spirit, mournful, because so pure
in a sinful world!—and sad, because he missed his heavenly kindred! Now,
at the death-hour, he stands up before you! He bids you look again at
Hester’s scarlet letter! He tells you, that, with all its mysterious
horror, it is but the shadow of what he bears on his own breast, and that even
this, his own red stigma, is no more than the type of what has seared his
inmost heart! Stand any here that question God’s judgment on a sinner!
Behold! Behold, a dreadful witness of it!”</p>
<p>With a convulsive motion, he tore away the ministerial band from before his
breast. It was revealed! But it were irreverent to describe that revelation.
For an instant, the gaze of the horror-stricken multitude was concentrated on
the ghastly miracle; while the minister stood, with a flush of triumph in his
face, as one who, in the crisis of acutest pain, had won a victory. Then, down
he sank upon the scaffold! Hester partly raised him, and supported his head
against her bosom. Old Roger Chillingworth knelt down beside him, with a blank,
dull countenance, out of which the life seemed to have departed.</p>
<p>“Thou hast escaped me!” he repeated more than once. “Thou
hast escaped me!”</p>
<p>“May God forgive thee!” said the minister. “Thou, too, hast
deeply sinned!”</p>
<p>He withdrew his dying eyes from the old man, and fixed them on the woman and
the child.</p>
<p>“My little Pearl,” said he, feebly and there was a sweet and gentle
smile over his face, as of a spirit sinking into deep repose; nay, now that the
burden was removed, it seemed almost as if he would be sportive with the
child—“dear little Pearl, wilt thou kiss me now? Thou wouldst not,
yonder, in the forest! But now thou wilt?”</p>
<p>Pearl kissed his lips. A spell was broken. The great scene of grief, in which
the wild infant bore a part had developed all her sympathies; and as her tears
fell upon her father’s cheek, they were the pledge that she would grow up
amid human joy and sorrow, nor forever do battle with the world, but be a woman
in it. Towards her mother, too, Pearl’s errand as a messenger of anguish
was fulfilled.</p>
<p>“Hester,” said the clergyman, “farewell!”</p>
<p>“Shall we not meet again?” whispered she, bending her face down
close to his. “Shall we not spend our immortal life together? Surely,
surely, we have ransomed one another, with all this woe! Thou lookest far into
eternity, with those bright dying eyes! Then tell me what thou seest!”</p>
<p>“Hush, Hester—hush!” said he, with tremulous solemnity.
“The law we broke!—the sin here awfully revealed!—let these
alone be in thy thoughts! I fear! I fear! It may be, that, when we forgot our
God—when we violated our reverence each for the other’s
soul—it was thenceforth vain to hope that we could meet hereafter, in an
everlasting and pure reunion. God knows; and He is merciful! He hath proved his
mercy, most of all, in my afflictions. By giving me this burning torture to
bear upon my breast! By sending yonder dark and terrible old man, to keep the
torture always at red-heat! By bringing me hither, to die this death of
triumphant ignominy before the people! Had either of these agonies been
wanting, I had been lost for ever! Praised be His name! His will be done!
Farewell!”</p>
<p>That final word came forth with the minister’s expiring breath. The
multitude, silent till then, broke out in a strange, deep voice of awe and
wonder, which could not as yet find utterance, save in this murmur that rolled
so heavily after the departed spirit.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="chap24"></SPAN>XXIV.<br/> CONCLUSION</h2>
<p>After many days, when time sufficed for the people to arrange their thoughts in
reference to the foregoing scene, there was more than one account of what had
been witnessed on the scaffold.</p>
<p>Most of the spectators testified to having seen, on the breast of the unhappy
minister, a <small>SCARLET LETTER</small>—the very semblance of that worn
by Hester Prynne—imprinted in the flesh. As regarded its origin there
were various explanations, all of which must necessarily have been conjectural.
Some affirmed that the Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, on the very day when Hester
Prynne first wore her ignominious badge, had begun a course of
penance—which he afterwards, in so many futile methods, followed
out—by inflicting a hideous torture on himself. Others contended that the
stigma had not been produced until a long time subsequent, when old Roger
Chillingworth, being a potent necromancer, had caused it to appear, through the
agency of magic and poisonous drugs. Others, again and those best able to
appreciate the minister’s peculiar sensibility, and the wonderful
operation of his spirit upon the body—whispered their belief, that the
awful symbol was the effect of the ever-active tooth of remorse, gnawing from
the inmost heart outwardly, and at last manifesting Heaven’s dreadful
judgment by the visible presence of the letter. The reader may choose among
these theories. We have thrown all the light we could acquire upon the portent,
and would gladly, now that it has done its office, erase its deep print out of
our own brain, where long meditation has fixed it in very undesirable
distinctness.</p>
<p>It is singular, nevertheless, that certain persons, who were spectators of the
whole scene, and professed never once to have removed their eyes from the
Reverend Mr. Dimmesdale, denied that there was any mark whatever on his breast,
more than on a new-born infant’s. Neither, by their report, had his dying
words acknowledged, nor even remotely implied, any—the
slightest—connexion on his part, with the guilt for which Hester Prynne
had so long worn the scarlet letter. According to these highly-respectable
witnesses, the minister, conscious that he was dying—conscious, also,
that the reverence of the multitude placed him already among saints and
angels—had desired, by yielding up his breath in the arms of that fallen
woman, to express to the world how utterly nugatory is the choicest of
man’s own righteousness. After exhausting life in his efforts for
mankind’s spiritual good, he had made the manner of his death a parable,
in order to impress on his admirers the mighty and mournful lesson, that, in
the view of Infinite Purity, we are sinners all alike. It was to teach them,
that the holiest amongst us has but attained so far above his fellows as to
discern more clearly the Mercy which looks down, and repudiate more utterly the
phantom of human merit, which would look aspiringly upward. Without disputing a
truth so momentous, we must be allowed to consider this version of Mr.
Dimmesdale’s story as only an instance of that stubborn fidelity with
which a man’s friends—and especially a clergyman’s—will
sometimes uphold his character, when proofs, clear as the mid-day sunshine on
the scarlet letter, establish him a false and sin-stained creature of the dust.</p>
<p>The authority which we have chiefly followed—a manuscript of old date,
drawn up from the verbal testimony of individuals, some of whom had known
Hester Prynne, while others had heard the tale from contemporary witnesses
fully confirms the view taken in the foregoing pages. Among many morals which
press upon us from the poor minister’s miserable experience, we put only
this into a sentence:—“Be true! Be true! Be true! Show freely to
the world, if not your worst, yet some trait whereby the worst may be
inferred!”</p>
<p>Nothing was more remarkable than the change which took place, almost
immediately after Mr. Dimmesdale’s death, in the appearance and demeanour
of the old man known as Roger Chillingworth. All his strength and
energy—all his vital and intellectual force—seemed at once to
desert him, insomuch that he positively withered up, shrivelled away and almost
vanished from mortal sight, like an uprooted weed that lies wilting in the sun.
This unhappy man had made the very principle of his life to consist in the
pursuit and systematic exercise of revenge; and when, by its completest triumph
consummation that evil principle was left with no further material to support
it—when, in short, there was no more Devil’s work on earth for him
to do, it only remained for the unhumanised mortal to betake himself whither
his master would find him tasks enough, and pay him his wages duly. But, to all
these shadowy beings, so long our near acquaintances—as well Roger
Chillingworth as his companions we would fain be merciful. It is a curious
subject of observation and inquiry, whether hatred and love be not the same
thing at bottom. Each, in its utmost development, supposes a high degree of
intimacy and heart-knowledge; each renders one individual dependent for the
food of his affections and spiritual fife upon another: each leaves the
passionate lover, or the no less passionate hater, forlorn and desolate by the
withdrawal of his subject. Philosophically considered, therefore, the two
passions seem essentially the same, except that one happens to be seen in a
celestial radiance, and the other in a dusky and lurid glow. In the spiritual
world, the old physician and the minister—mutual victims as they have
been—may, unawares, have found their earthly stock of hatred and
antipathy transmuted into golden love.</p>
<p>Leaving this discussion apart, we have a matter of business to communicate to
the reader. At old Roger Chillingworth’s decease, (which took place
within the year), and by his last will and testament, of which Governor
Bellingham and the Reverend Mr. Wilson were executors, he bequeathed a very
considerable amount of property, both here and in England to little Pearl, the
daughter of Hester Prynne.</p>
<p>So Pearl—the elf child—the demon offspring, as some people up to
that epoch persisted in considering her—became the richest heiress of her
day in the New World. Not improbably this circumstance wrought a very material
change in the public estimation; and had the mother and child remained here,
little Pearl at a marriageable period of life might have mingled her wild blood
with the lineage of the devoutest Puritan among them all. But, in no long time
after the physician’s death, the wearer of the scarlet letter
disappeared, and Pearl along with her. For many years, though a vague report
would now and then find its way across the sea—like a shapeless piece of
driftwood tossed ashore with the initials of a name upon it—yet no
tidings of them unquestionably authentic were received. The story of the
scarlet letter grew into a legend. Its spell, however, was still potent, and
kept the scaffold awful where the poor minister had died, and likewise the
cottage by the sea-shore where Hester Prynne had dwelt. Near this latter spot,
one afternoon some children were at play, when they beheld a tall woman in a
gray robe approach the cottage-door. In all those years it had never once been
opened; but either she unlocked it or the decaying wood and iron yielded to her
hand, or she glided shadow-like through these impediments—and, at all
events, went in.</p>
<p>On the threshold she paused—turned partly round—for perchance the
idea of entering alone and all so changed, the home of so intense a former
life, was more dreary and desolate than even she could bear. But her hesitation
was only for an instant, though long enough to display a scarlet letter on her
breast.</p>
<p>And Hester Prynne had returned, and taken up her long-forsaken shame! But where
was little Pearl? If still alive she must now have been in the flush and bloom
of early womanhood. None knew—nor ever learned with the fulness of
perfect certainty—whether the elf-child had gone thus untimely to a
maiden grave; or whether her wild, rich nature had been softened and subdued
and made capable of a woman’s gentle happiness. But through the remainder
of Hester’s life there were indications that the recluse of the scarlet
letter was the object of love and interest with some inhabitant of another
land. Letters came, with armorial seals upon them, though of bearings unknown
to English heraldry. In the cottage there were articles of comfort and luxury
such as Hester never cared to use, but which only wealth could have purchased
and affection have imagined for her. There were trifles too, little ornaments,
beautiful tokens of a continual remembrance, that must have been wrought by
delicate fingers at the impulse of a fond heart. And once Hester was seen
embroidering a baby-garment with such a lavish richness of golden fancy as
would have raised a public tumult had any infant thus apparelled, been shown to
our sober-hued community.</p>
<p>In fine, the gossips of that day believed—and Mr. Surveyor Pue, who made
investigations a century later, believed—and one of his recent successors
in office, moreover, faithfully believes—that Pearl was not only alive,
but married, and happy, and mindful of her mother; and that she would most
joyfully have entertained that sad and lonely mother at her fireside.</p>
<p>But there was a more real life for Hester Prynne, here, in New England, than in
that unknown region where Pearl had found a home. Here had been her sin; here,
her sorrow; and here was yet to be her penitence. She had returned, therefore,
and resumed—of her own free will, for not the sternest magistrate of that
iron period would have imposed it—resumed the symbol of which we have
related so dark a tale. Never afterwards did it quit her bosom. But, in the
lapse of the toilsome, thoughtful, and self-devoted years that made up
Hester’s life, the scarlet letter ceased to be a stigma which attracted
the world’s scorn and bitterness, and became a type of something to be
sorrowed over, and looked upon with awe, yet with reverence too. And, as Hester
Prynne had no selfish ends, nor lived in any measure for her own profit and
enjoyment, people brought all their sorrows and perplexities, and besought her
counsel, as one who had herself gone through a mighty trouble. Women, more
especially—in the continually recurring trials of wounded, wasted,
wronged, misplaced, or erring and sinful passion—or with the dreary
burden of a heart unyielded, because unvalued and unsought came to
Hester’s cottage, demanding why they were so wretched, and what the
remedy! Hester comforted and counselled them, as best she might. She assured
them, too, of her firm belief that, at some brighter period, when the world
should have grown ripe for it, in Heaven’s own time, a new truth would be
revealed, in order to establish the whole relation between man and woman on a
surer ground of mutual happiness. Earlier in life, Hester had vainly imagined
that she herself might be the destined prophetess, but had long since
recognised the impossibility that any mission of divine and mysterious truth
should be confided to a woman stained with sin, bowed down with shame, or even
burdened with a life-long sorrow. The angel and apostle of the coming
revelation must be a woman, indeed, but lofty, pure, and beautiful, and wise;
moreover, not through dusky grief, but the ethereal medium of joy; and showing
how sacred love should make us happy, by the truest test of a life successful
to such an end.</p>
<p>So said Hester Prynne, and glanced her sad eyes downward at the scarlet letter.
And, after many, many years, a new grave was delved, near an old and sunken
one, in that burial-ground beside which King’s Chapel has since been
built. It was near that old and sunken grave, yet with a space between, as if
the dust of the two sleepers had no right to mingle. Yet one tomb-stone served
for both. All around, there were monuments carved with armorial bearings; and
on this simple slab of slate—as the curious investigator may still
discern, and perplex himself with the purport—there appeared the
semblance of an engraved escutcheon. It bore a device, a herald’s wording
of which may serve for a motto and brief description of our now concluded
legend; so sombre is it, and relieved only by one ever-glowing point of light
gloomier than the shadow:—</p>
<p class="center">
“O<small>N A FIELD, SABLE, THE LETTER</small> A, <small>GULES</small>.”</p>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />